The Naval Review
Transcription
The Naval Review
THE N AVA L REVIEW cc Think wisely. Plan boldly. Act swiftly." T H E OBJECT m NAVAL REVIEW, by providing a vehicle for the expression of personal opinions on matters of naval interest, aims to stimulate thought and discussion on such matters among naval officers and others connected with the Navies of the Commonwealth. The views of junior officers are especially welcome. Technical details, such as are more appropriate to turt books, should be omitted from contributions. Founded in I9I 2 I S S U E D Q U A R T E R L Y FOR P R I V A T E C I R C U L A T I O N For the Regulations of THE NAVAL REVIEW see overleaf. It is important that they be carefully studied. Copyrighted under Act of 191 1 Vol. XLIX No.4 October, 1961 Editor's N o t e s T HESE are indeed perplexing times and it seems that our leaders will need almost superhuman foresight and statesmanship in their deliberations on the fundamental problems that face them. The 'Common Market', whether or not we should take the staggeringly important step of joining, dominates the domestic horizon. It is a question which seems likely to split the nation from top to bottom. Every day one reads arguments which prove, to their writers' satisfaction, that to join (or not to join, as the case may be) spells ruin and eclipse. How to decide? At any rate it seems fairly clear that the 'party boys', who dominate the Trades Unions and take their orders from Moscow, are firmly against us joining; this may give the clue we are all looking for as to our best course! There are, broadly speaking, two sorts of war in which we might be involved in the future-'total' and 'limited'. But there is another sort of war in which we have been involved for the last fifteen years-the 'cold' war against Communism, which is made no less deadly to our survival by the fact that the country as a whole does not realise that it is going on. It is, in fact, a war in which only the other side is fighting and which we are, very naturally, losing. The main Communist weapon is industrial subversion and they have captured control of industrial labour in a number of key industries to an extent which the man in the street does not begin to realise. The current E.T.U. scandal is only some indication of their methods, which apparently even now no one has any serious intention of curbing. It would be comforting to believe that this is the only Union in which such goings-on are rife but, of course, this is far from the case. It is idle to bleat that the British working man is basically sensible and hardworking; the British working man is too scared-and who can blame him ?-to stand out against the 'strong-arm boys' and their Communist bosses. He knows better than to attend branch meetings, which they dominate, and if he attends mass meetings, he knows better than to vote against the 'party line'. Responsible Trade Union control of labour in the industries concerned has been completely demolished by the 'shop steward' system, which has been virtually taken over by the Communists. All employers of industrial labour know this but they are powerless to fight without Government aid. So perhaps it would be as well if our leaders thought less about 'total war', or even 'limited war', and made some recognisable attempt to resist in the subversive war which Russia has been waging, quite openly and blatantly, against this country for fifteen years. Annual General Meeting W 3P4 3 B m THEAnnual General Meeting will be held on Friday, 15th December, 1961, at the Naval and Military Club, 94 Piccadilly, from 5.15 p.m. to 7 p.m. Vice-Admiral Sir Charles Hughes-Hallett will take the Chair. The meeting will be devoted to a general discussion of NAVAL REVIEW affairs. Afterwards, at about 6 p.m., the meeting will become a social one. Wives of those attending will be welcome, also at the business meeting if they so wish. After 6 p.m. refreshments will be provided and members will be asked to pay for what they order. It is hoped that all those who can make it convenient to attend will do so. Those intending to attend are requested to inform the Secretary of THE NAVAL REVIEW in advance. It is suggested this Notice be detached and kept separately as a reminder. 320 NOTICES And supposing we do join the Common Market, what will be the effect on the Services? Shall we be committed for ever to the 'continental strategy' which has entailed the virtual annihilation of the Navy? Or will the logic of our situation soon begin to filter through to those responsible for the shape of our armed forces ? We still regard ourselves as a 'world power' but the dissolution of the Empire proceeds apace and it seems that we may soon look in vain for any overseas bases at all. Some, as in the case of Colombo, Trincomalee and Simonstown, have been returned to their 'uncommitted' owners; others, such as Cyprus, Freetown, Singapore and Kahawa, the new Army base in Kenya, depend for their use on approval of our operations by their current leaders or dictators-a quite unpredictable factor. Which of us at this moment would care to invest his own savings in a base in Kenya ? In the present world situation it is difficult to take Hong Kong very seriously as a base. And if the few hundred inhabitants of the Maldives decide, on the advice of some 'big brother', that they would like to become 'uncommitted', no doubt we shall have to abandon the R.A.F. staging post at Gan. And so it goes on. It is surely becoming clearer every day that in the not distant future any influence which we hope to exert in far places will have to be exerted by sea. The authors of the letters on 'Effective Working Hours' and 'The New Battleground' in the July edition will find replies 'straight from the horse's mouth' in the Correspondence section of this issue. We have been informed that printing charges for THE NAVAL REVIEW are to go up by another 10 per cent from this month and this will largely cancel out the improvement in our income resulting from covenanted subscriptions. Continued efforts are needed therefore to increase our membership. Matter for the January 1962 edition should be sent in as early as possible and not later than 1st December. Notices Annual Subscription, 1962 THEannual subscription for 1962 is due on 1st January. If payment is not already authorised by Banker's standing order members are requested to send their subscription direct to THE NAVAL REVIEW Bankers, National Provincial Bank Ltd., 18 Cromwell Place, London, S.W.7. Changes in Address WILL members please notify every change of address to the Secretary, thereby saving considerable expense in postage, and replacement of copies damaged in transit following delivery to incorrect addresses. Soft on Communism . . . . .?. This article was written by a member stationed in the United States and was addressed to the American, non-military reader. he trouble with him, is that he's soft on communism. . . .' A potent taunt and very hard to rebut. It is amongst the last but most persistent legacies of McCarthyism, and like all broad smears relies upon an ignorance of the subject which is only matched by the readiness to accept such a sweeping judgment on a fellowman. And what does a person have to do or say to lay himself open to such imputations ? It would seem to be almost anything, depending upon the venom and lack of scruple of the accuser, and even a man with the stature of General Eisenhower is not safe from such attack. But even if we restrict consideration to the genuinely sincere critics, the list of opinions which automatically classify one as 'soft' is very extensive, though it may only entail some divergence from the accepted wisdom in the matter of handling the Soviets, unless it should be in the direction of bigger and better bombs. If we are to avoid such charges we must pay the price of conformity, and with it the inevitable loss of flexibility and freedom of action. And it is to this lack of flexibility in dealing with the Soviets that I propose to turn my attention. But lest I should suffer immediate dismissal as a woolly-brained intellectual who has fallen prey to Communist blandishments, I intend to state my case in terms of sound and accepted military logic. As it is necessary to approach this question of 'dealing with the Russians' from the beginning, let me first enter a strong warning against over-dogmatism in the interpretation of Soviet intentions. There are at least ten major and quite different lines of approach to this problem of interpretation which are followed by the various prominent analysts in this field, and from these various approaches several perfectly respectable but frequently conflicting conclusions emerge. These analysts have however, one very important qualification in common, a qualification usually completely absent from the armchair pundits, namely, a thorough knowledge of the subject and a deep understanding of the people, the country, and the ideology they are analysing. And although they may differ somewhat in their final interpretation of Communist intentions, there is a comforting unanimity both in the majority of their basic assumptions and in their more general conclusions, many of which, however, conflict with the conventional wisdom on the subject. We know that statistics can be made to prove anything. This is even more true of the apt quotation, usually both out of date and out of context. Equally applicable in this particular field, is the old adage that a little knowledge is a dangerous thing. Even amongst the more broadly educated members of the community, general and categorical conclusions are too often formed upon inadequate knowledge, the potted analysis and a sub-conscious selection of information which best accords with preconceived opinions. It is ironical that amongst those accused of being 'Soft on Communism' are some with the broadest knowledge of the subject, who know in the greatest detail the full and barbaric history of the Soviet state and who understand most clearly the deeper evils of the system, some of which are often more insidious than the obvious ones of which we are all aware. And it is no coincidence that it is the small minority of analysts who approach the problem in a 'T 322 SOFT ON COMMUNISM . . . . 3. spirit of vindictiveness or as a crusade to prove that Western Capitalism has the monopoly of all virtue, who come closest to popular opinion, but who achieve this largely by forfeiting the objectivity of their studies, and allowing prejudice to cloud the analysis. So much for our warning, which is in essence a plea for objectivity, and the need to know our enemy for what he really is, and not what we assume he ought to be. We will return to this later, but first we must get back to this main question of how we are to deal with the Russians. And although somewhat obvious, it is important that before we decide as to how we are to deal with the Russians we must first decide what it is we intend to do with them. Or, in the military jargon, which is now part of our daily life, what is our Objective in the struggle with Leninist Communism ? This question of the Objective is vital and all too frequently neglected. From our time in the armed services, some of us may remember that it formed an essential part of the Commander's 'Estimate of the Situation'. This estimate is a stylised form of staff paper, designed to provide a framework for a methodical process of successive logical deductions, and is used to determine the best course of action to take in any given set of circumstances in order to attain, or accomplish, one's predetermined Objective. This objective is, however, usually handed down from above, since it is derived directly from one's assigned mission; as a result, the actual selection of the objective is rarely a matter of great concern to the Commander or his staff. This type of Commander's Estimate is of course not peculiar to the U.S. armed services, being found in various forms throughout the teachings of all military staffs, and in this respect the British Navy is of particular interest to us when considering the question of our objective. The British Navy is somewhat exceptional, even amongst its sister services, in that it requires that the Commander who is making the Estimate should almost invariably determine his own objective, or as they call it, his Aim. This requirement is founded in history and the nature of naval operations before the invention of modern communications. when naval commanders at all levels were continuously required to make decisions on the best course of action, with their only guidance some broad directive such as 'Act as necessary to protect Her Majesty's interests'. As a result, the British Navy places considerable emphasis upon the process of selecting the correct Aim, because they contend that unless the Aim is correct, the rest of the estimate, and hence the plan, is useless, since the crucial test of the finally selected course of action must be the question 'Does it best gain and maintain the Aim ?' As an essential corollary to this, they require that it must be possible to achieve the Aim with the forces available and the circumstances pertaining, and that if none of the possible alternative courses of action can do so, then the Aim must by definition be incorrect, and it is mandatory to select another Aim, which can be achieved. As a further refinement, they require the wording to be precise and concise, and except when absolutely unavoidable, to be stated in positive and active terms; a negative, or defensively worded Aim is not generally acceptable. And as a final comment on the general art of writing estimates, the most unforgivable sin is that of 'Situating the Estimate' instead of 'Estimating the Situation', i.e., of providing a post-facto justification for a course of action which has already been arbitrarily decided. This excursion into the field of international staff technics was not designed to impress, but rather to emphasise the importance of selecting the correct objective, SOFT ON COMMUNISM . . . .? 323 and to provide a certain degree of authenticity to the discussion which follows. For it would appear that the West has never reasoned out any clear-cut objective from fundamentals, but rather that their objective grew up like Topsy, as a postfacto rationalisation arising from the various courses of action which we were forced to take in response to Soviet initiatives. That I am not alone in my concern about selecting the correct objective was shown by the formation of President Eisenhower's special committee on the selection of National goals, which was charged with a similar problem, though on a much broader canvas. For the moment, however, I will confine myself to considering what our objective should be, in our struggle with Leninist Communism. . The West is fighting against the Communist Bloc because Leninist Communism seeks to destroy it. The Communist doctrine proclaims that the ultimate collapse of capitalism is inevitable, and it is therefore the duty of international Communism to hasten that collapse, so that world Socialism may be established. Despite all talk of peaceful coexistence, the essential need for world-wide Communist hegemony, brought about by some form of revolution, whether constitutional or violent, is a continuing tenet of Communist doctrine, and is now recognised as such by the West. The West is in conflict with Soviet Communism because the latter has declared war on the established order. It is the Soviets' insistence on the ultimate triumph of their particular version of World Socialism with the concomitant liquidation of Western Capitalism, that has forced the West to fight for its survival. Once the West had woken up to the situation which it found itself in, there were three broad policies open to them in their struggle against Communism: They could attack, and attempt to destroy the Communists before the latter could achieve their aim. They could capitulate, and accept an imposed revolution. They could adopt the middle course and attempt to contain the threat, meanwhile having by necessity to coexist with the enemy. The West in fact chose this last course of action, and for the last several years has been attempting to contain and live with the problem. Although popular opinion would generally have it otherwise, once the West had fully appreciated the threat which it faced, for several years it was unexpectedly successful in containing this danger, if results are assessed in terms of what the Soviets were trying to achieve at that time. It is of course important to assess it from this viewpoint, in order to avoid confusion with other developments in the world, and in particular with the post-war surge of nationalism and other historical trends arising from the rapid economic and social advances which were made during the last 100 years. I realise that such a categorical statement as to the effectiveness of containment is likely to arouse violent protests, since it has long been fashionably realistic to talk of the unchecked advance of Communism since 1945. And it is perhaps unwise even to attempt to defend such a contentious statement without being able to argue it out in very great detail. But there is a disturbing tendency to credit the Russians with superhuman clarity of thought and penetration of analysis, coupled with unlimited patience and guile and a complete understanding of all situations which they exploit always to their own advantage. This is of course the way the Russians would like to have it, but even allowing the political capacity for very long range 324 SOFT ON COMMUNISM . . . .? planning, the evaluators, planners and operators are only human and hence fallible, and indeed have proven themselves so. Whilst there is little chance of the conventional wisdom underestimating the Communist threat, it often adopts the opposite and equally dangerous extreme of overestimation, which induces pessimism, inflexibility, and an immobility which verges on defeatism. It may therefore be instructive to attempt a rough balance of the profit and loss account of Soviet external policy between 1917 and 1958, to see how successful they have been in these &odd years, in implementing their stated intentions. If we exclude the subjugation of the European satellites which was the direct result of our policies during the Second World War, we see that major Communist territorial accessions outside the old Tsarist frontiers are limited to Czechoslovakia, China, N. Vietnam and Tibet. Although the last three represent a sizeable part of the earth's surface and population, the successes in China and N. Vietnam were the result of indigenous movements which did not derive their impetus from Moscow. It has always been stated Communist Policy to capture Nationalist rebellions and adapt them into Communist revolutions, yet in Asia, the Soviets failed to do this in all cases except for part of French Indochina, and as we have said Moscow can claim little credit for the success of Ho Chi Min in N. Vietnam. On the other hand, by the end of 1958, a vast number of other previously dependent countries had achieved full independence, and none of them had fallen under Communist domination. Meanwhile, a whole series of Communist adventures, ranging from the Greek insurrection, through the Berlin blockade and the Korean War, have been thwarted by the West; Jugoslavia has asserted her independence from the bloc, and internal Communism has been actively and openly attacked in the newly independent but still neutralist countries such as the United Arab Republic, Malaya, India and Burma. Most important of all, throughout the world the majority of national authorities, if not all their peoples, are now aware of the dangers of Soviet Communism, even if many think that they are skilful enough to sup with the devil, and see little to choose between the two opposing blocs, anyway as far as their own national interests are concerned. There is no denying that the West has also had many serious setbacks to their own most cherished policies but few of these originated from Soviet initiatives, although Communism is a convenient whipping boy. As we have said, just as it is important not to be complacent about the Communist threat, so is it important not to paint them 10 feet tall, and not to credit them with ubiquity. It is therefore necessary to assess Soviet successes in terms of what they were setting out to achieve, and to realise that many of the developments which were seemingly unfavourable to the West were basically the result of historical trends; sometimes these were compounded by Western indecision and obtuseness, and often were exploited by the Communists, but they were rarely the result of Soviet long-range initiatives. During the period since the war it would be true to say that the West's main long term objective has been 'To contain further Communist expansion', and that this is still largely the case. In the past this containment was accomplished in many ways ranging from full scale deterrence of total war to military and economic support of likely threatened areas, and is currently seen as stretching far into the future. But in my survey of Soviet gains I deliberately stopped at the beginning of 1959, partly because in many cases it is still too soon to judge results, but mainly because SOFT ON COMMUNISM . . . . ?. 325 the maintenance of our main objective has become progressively more difficult and less successful, as Russia has sought to outflank our conventional modes of containment. Not only is physical containment as practised in the past tending to become ever less effective, but its relevance to the future conflict is daily being placed in question. Furthermore, if present attitudes and trends persist, direct conflict with the growing power of China appears ultimately inevitable, whilst the efficacy of the deterrent to prevent such a war becomes ever less credible. This last prospect of a major war must obviously be unfavourable to the real interests of the West, if only for the reason that they rejected such a course of action when a victory might have been more easily attainable. Taken in conjunction with the relative lack of success of current containment it raises doubt as to the merit of our recent policies, and therefore of the main objective which they are designed to maintain. The force of logic appears to dictate that the West must discard its current objective whose sole element is 'Containment', and seek some better objective, more suited to the present situation, and one which gives hope of some future solution of the conflict. To forestall those who are poised to condemn me as a left-wing deviationist from the Capitalist party-line, let me hasten to emphasise that I do not consider that containment as an element of policy is wrong; with present Communist attitudes and ideology, it is an essential component of any policy if the West and the rest of the world is to resist absorption, and as I have already argued, in the past it has been much more effective than is usually credited. Containment is only unsatisfactory when it is the sole, or main, objective. This has always been so, because it deals only with the symptoms of the conflict and neglects the root cause; but now in addition, it also suffers from the overriding disadvantage that it can no longer be effectively maintained. The objective of containment is inherently negative and defensive, and the resultant policies are governed by mainly military considerations. Conceived in haste, and as a reaction to Soviet initiatives, these policies were based upon an attempt to freeze existing boundaries and political allegiances, and the resultant defensive line grew up haphazardly, with no regard for military geography, nor for the political complexions of those who cared to join the West. Arising from this predominantly defensive policy, the West has found it necessary to counter every single thing the Soviet Bloc has done. Working from the correct assumption that the Soviets will only act in their own best interests, the West automatically assumes that it must therefore by definition be against Western interests, and acts to counter it. Arising from the military nature of the policy, the West interprets all its own actions in terms of military advantage, and sees only the military implications in all Soviet actions. Thus the West may offer the Communists nothing which could conceivably be of any military benefit to them, even if it were in the west's economic or political interests to do so. In the same manner, any form of centralised collectivism, however suitable to the local economic situation has automatically been suspect, and until recently the West has tended to confuse opinions which dissent from Western economic theory, with the real danger of World revolution. All these reactions inevitably arose from a narrowly defined and purely defensive objective, which as we have said, we can now no longer maintain. Although such an objective appeared acceptable for a certain period in the post-war years, this is most certainly no longer true. Western planners have been guilty of the unforgivable 326 SOFT ON COMMUNISM . . . .?. sin of Situating the Estimate, so that the objective might fit an already established course of action. If the West is to survive, it must discard such a stultifying objective, which restricts the freedom of manoeuvre and denies it flexibility. Having rejected our existing objective, we must next select what we consider to be the correct one, and to do so, it is necessary to !ill in some more background on both sides. On the Western side, a survey of the last 50 or 60 or so years shows a remarkable sociological advance amongst the leading nations of the West. However distasteful Marx's teachings may have been to the ruling classes in the mid-Nineteenth Century, few sociologists deny that his theories were based upon sound observation of the conditions at the time. It was not the observations which were at fault, but his theory of the resultant developments. Marx would have been amazed to see the present forms of so-called Western Capitalism to be found amongst the more enlightened exponents, ranging from barely disguised socialism to economies which whilst theoretically bastions of private enterprise, are in fact severely restricted by Government controls. This is not to pretend that everything in the West is perfect, but there has unquestionably been a very great advance from the attitudes and socio-economic situation of Marx's time. Turning to the Communists, for the moment we will only consider the Soviets, leaving China to a later stage. We see that in Russia, starting from a relatively low standard, the Soviets have achieved a very large degree of industrialisation. Having recovered from the tremendous economic setback of World War 11, they can now claim a much higher standard of living than previously, and with it, an easing of internal tensions and a relaxation of controls. In certain technical fields they are even ahead of the West. Yet despite this apparent growing together of the two opposing systems in economic and even social terms, there has been no relaxation in the international conflict. This continuing struggle can partly be accounted for by the straight conflict of interest between the two power blocs, with the Soviet Bloc trying to establish a sphere of influence for herself in a world which, until the second world war, was dominated most effectively, albeit (in their own eyes) benevolently, by the Western nations. But this conflict of interest is subsidiary to the root cause of the conflict, which is contained in the dogma of world revolution. The Communist doctrine still predicts the inevitability of some kind of conflict with Western Capitalism and the ultimate victory of World Communism. It would seem incontrovertible that as long as this element of the doctrine remains a tenet of Communist faith, there can be no chance of the conflict being resolved, no matter how closely the two systems meanwhile evolve towards each other. Unless the dogma is renounced or modified, the conflict must persist until one side or the other is defeated or capitulates. I have made here a fairly categorical assertion that it is the Communist dogma which is at the root of the conflict. Against this, there is of course the argument that we are faced by historic Russian imperialism, and since this question of whether the Soviets are primarily motivated by doctrinal impulses or by national imperialism is most important, I must deal very briefly with this counter-claim. The importance of this argument lies in the fact that it would be far more difficult SOFT ON COMMUNISN . . . . ?. 327 for the West to deflect the driving course of nationalism which seeks physical world domination, than to effect an adjustment of an extreme ideology which is in any case likely to be moderated by time. We have already allowed that there is an element of both in Soviet motives but where national aggrandisement is dominant it can usually only be checked by a head-on confrontation, i.e., by war. Whilst we accept that there is this element in Soviet policy which reflects the natural instincts of a powerful and growing nation to establish its own position in a largely antipathetic world, and in itself this must generate a conflict of interest, this instinct cannot be equated with all-conquering imperialism. It is the additional, Messianic element which is so disturbing to the West, the element which rejects any offer of part-shares, but requires that all these spheres of influence shall necessarily become communist-style states, and which even seeks to replace governments already friendly to the Soviets with a version modelled more closely to the Soviet pattern. There is insufficient space to present the very convincing case supporting this assertion, which not only places the facts of Tsarist Imperialism in their proper perspective, but also draws together the threads of Russian post-revolutionary expansion, and show how the pattern reflects the pre-eminence of doctrine. The most persuasive argument comes from the numerous examples throughout the brief Soviet history, where Moscow has behaved in a manner least suited to achieve their aims, but in full accord with the body of theory and doctrine built up over the years. Superficially and tactically, the Soviets appear extremely supple as they twist the party line to changing circumstances; but the very need to do so is an indication of the inherent inflexibility of the system, and shows that to a certain extent they are prisoners of their own doctrine and dogma. And now, as Khrushchev tries to break away from some of the restrictions of the dogma, he finds himself engaged in a bitter doctrinal argument with China. And the continuing rift with Jugoslavia has been kept alive by a fundamental doctrinal schism, despite sporadic attempts to heal the breach, since a rapprochement is so greatly in the Soviet interest. It is these contradictions, together with the mass of similar evidence which leads one to conclude that the main threat posed by Soviet Russia stems from the ascendency of the Communist doctrine, and is not due to a heavily disguised form of Russian imperialism. The root of the conflict lies in the dogma of the need for world revolution. Having isolated the root of the conflict, we must next consider very briefly certain assumptions which will further aid us in selecting our new objectives. For a start, it would seem fair to assume that it is not in the interests of either side to become involved in an all-out nuclear war; in fact, irrespective of doctrine, we can assume that present Russian leaders place the continued safety and well-being of the Soviet Union above all other considerations. We can also claim, on the basis of history, that it is possible for any doctrine to evolve, or to be changed as the result of the persuasions of external circumstances and internal rationalisation, and that this possibility also applies to Communist doctrine. And finally, we must allow that for any settlement to be effective and lasting, it must be in the true interests of all parties to that settlement. We have seen that the West is fighting against Communism because the latter is bent on destroying it. Of the three broad policies open to them, the West has 328 SOFT ON COMMUNISM . . . . 2. chosen the middle one of trying to contain and meanwhile live with the problem, and has specifically rejected the possibility of destroying Communisn at its source. Furthermore, there is little evidence in the past century of genuine crusading instincts amongst the Western nations, and it would seem likely that if the Soviets had been content to practise their theories within the confines of Russia the present form of conflict would not exist. As we have said, the root of the conflict lies in the dogma of the need for revolution. Correspondingly, if we could only remove, or alter this dogma, the main cause of the conflict would disappear. The West's correct objective now becomes inescapable. Their aim must be 'to change the Soviet's mind as to the need for World Revolution'. 'To persuade the enemy to change his mind' . . . the classic objective in politics and war, by methods ranging from bribery to armed conflict. How does this new objective measure up to the criteria we discussed earlier; it has the advantages of being positively worded and requires positive or offensive action; it would seem to be both concise and precise, and we cannot be accused of 'Situating the Estimate' in our choice of this objective. We must, however, now subject it to the most crucial test of 'Is it possible to achieve this objective ?' The objective rests upon the assumption that nothing human is immutable, and although this assumption would seem almost incontrovertible, there are two main objections most frequently raised against the possibility of any change in Soviet attitude. They run roughly as follows:a. Russia does not want any change, nor does she wish for any settlement. A change in the present situation is not in her interests. b. If Russia should accept any kind of settlement, it will only be because it is in her interest to do so. By implied definition, such a settlement must be inimical to the West. The first part of the statement at b. is only logical and of course applies equally to both sides of the conflict; but it does not constitute an objection. Any settlement to be effective must be considered by both parties to be in their real interests; any other kind of settlement can only be applied and persist under some form of duress. However, the implication in the second part of b. is not conceded and is disposed of later in the discussion. The first argument at a. is of course far too sweeping. The fact that Soviet Russia may be satisfied with things as they are does not mean that there cannot be other situations which she might consider more favourable. Russia will not change unless she considers it to be in her interests to do so. . . but then again, are we so sure that we know what she considers to be her true interests ? We assume that her best interests are world domination. . . . but except for the requirements of doctrine, is this in fact any more valid than the Soviet assumption that American Capitalists want war ? It would seem obvious that a change of dogma cannot be imposed upon the Russians except by going to war. Therefore, with the assumptions we have taken, such a change would have to be voluntarily carried out by the Communists. For this to happen, circumstances would have to be conducive to such a change and the Communists would have to be convinced that it was in their best interests to make one. For them to modify their doctrine so that it was no longer actively antagonistic SOFT ON COMMUNISM . . . . ?. 329 to the West, circumstances would have to exist which would convince the Soviets of the following four factors:a. That the doctrine as it stands is no longer yielding any positive benefits. b. That there will be positive advantages accruing from a genuine entente with the West. c. That any modifications can be rationalised in doctrinal terms, with no need for recantation or loss of face. d. That the West is not antagonistic to the aim of national communism as a socioeconomic theory for local application if appropriate. Although we have not generally appreciated it at the time, factor a. has come about several times in the past, and on each occasion it has caused a slight adjustment in Soviet policies and sometimes a rationalisation of doctrine. This situation was partly the result of effective containment, but also due to both the good sense of newly independent countries, and to fresh minds in the Kremlin being brought to bear on the more glaring contradictions of Stalin's policies. At present, the world situation is extremely fluid but even so in the recent months the Soviets have lost as often as they have won with their many initiatives. Although this fluidity may hamper our efforts to actively negate all possible Soviet initiatives, we should remember that the vast majority of Communist successes have been derived almost directly from our weaknesses, failures or sins of omission, and it is in these areas that we should be able to affect improvements irrespective of Soviet actions. It would seem therefore that factor a. could in due course be re-established if we adopt the correct policies. The factor at b. is new, and although in the 1950s no conscious attempt was made to persuade them of the advantages to be gained from co-operation, it is obvious that the Western world has much to offer, which could be of great benefit to the Soviet bloc. If the narrowly restrictive considerations of our previous objective can be excluded from a future policy based upon our new and more far-reaching aim, there appears to be no reason why this requirement cannot be met, particularly since we can reject the sterile notion that anything that is of benefit to the Russians must be definition by bad for the West. Turning to the requirement at c., we know that the Communists are adept at the verbal somersault, and such an adjustment should be fairly simple to achieve, as long as the West is not too concerned with the hollow meaning of words. This might entail allowing a Communist rationalisation of Western Social theory, which would in fact continue unchanged, whilst permitting the Soviets to soft pedal the need for world revolution, on the grounds that it had already been largely achieved. The factor at d. would appear to present little problem, since the West is slowly learning to differentiate between economic doctrines and world-wide revolutionary movements, and we have already accepted the Jugoslav experiment, and in fact financially support it. It would therefore seem that almost against expectations, the West could bring about all four of the necessary factors, if they set their minds to it, and adjusted their policies accordingly. As predicted, in determining whether the objective can be achieved, the argument has of necessity been concentrated upon Russia since she presents the most immediate threat. China, without the Soviets to support her with money and material, would present a lesser threat than at present; Russia, without China, has already proved - 330 SOFT ON COMMUNISM . . . . ?. herself capable of shaking the world, and is still, for the time being at least, the dominant partner in the bloc. It is also unlikely that, at this stage of its revolutionary evolution, China would respond to such approaches, and she has in fact shown an aggressive intransigence on this score. This does not, however, invalidate the objective in its long term application to China, but merely at this time places greater emphasis, above other elements of policy, on containment in this particular area. We have shown that the West is capable of achieving this objective with respect to Soviet Russia, allowing that we apply the right policies. Opposition inside Russia could be expected from certain of the old guard Communists, but support would be likely from the rising generation of managerial technocrats who are less fettered by doctrine and more directly concerned with the progress of their country. We may also assume that such policies will be opposed in this country by the staunchest of anti-communists, convinced that we were selling our heritage for a mirage. But the logic of our attack on the root of the conflict is inescapable; since the West does not wish to capitulate, nor does it consider it expedient to attack the source, it must of necessity contain the problem until such time as some dilution of the doctrine takes place. This is in fact what we have been doing for the last 16 years. The argument really centres on whether the West should sit back and wait for this change to take place through the process of time, meanwhile living on the perpetual brink of war, or whether the West should actively assist in bringing about this change, by creating circumstances favourable to such a change. Several centuries ago, the wars rooted in the Spanish inquisition were at their height. No one could then visualise a foreseeable future when either side would relent from their firm conviction that the others were fit only to be tortured on the rack or burnt at the stake. During the religious conquests of the Mohammedans, who considered it mandatory to convert as they conquered, no one could visualise the day when Moslems and Christians would coexist in peace. This analogy serves to bring out two points. Firstly, in these cases the Messianic fervour receded with time, even though movements had the added impetus of religious ideologies. Secondly, the factor which allowed these movements to come to terms, and live with the rest of the world, was the modification of their doctrine; a modification which diluted the previously dominant need for conversion, until the doctrine was no longer dangerous to other members of the community. There is no suggestion that there will necessarily be any genuine relaxation of Soviet despotism as it affects Russia. The lessons of history, the Russian character and current developments, none give much hope that their governmental system will move radically from some form of centralised oligarchy. Nor should this disturb the West, since this is the form of government which Russia has traditionally enjoyed for centuries. What, however, does concern the West, is that the Communists should renounce the need to convert the rest of the world and should forego their aim of World Revolution. Present Western policy is in fact based upon the hope of change; an unspoken hope, that if we can sweat it out for long enough the two systems will evolve towards each other and the menace will go away. It is therefore obviously in the West's true interest to strive for an international climate which supports the Soviet advocates of change, and which serves to blunt the arguments of those Communist zealots in favour of continuing with the doctrine as it is today. SOFT ON COMMUNISM . . . .?. 33I Allowing that we accept the new objective, what effect will this have on our policies ? To discuss the possible results in any detail would take at least another full length article, but there is nevertheless a need to stress two very important principles which this objective will immediately allow us to reintroduce into our planning, namely, the dominance of policital considerations in policy, and. . . . flexibility. Whilst containment was the sole objective, military considerations were inevitably paramount, since there were few other factors to balance against them. With the proposed new objective, which is so much more far-reaching and broader in its scope, consideration can be given to many other factors, which will in turn serve to produce a more balanced policy. Thus, the demands of absolute military security will be weighed against the more positive aspects of the new policy. As a result of forsaking the sterile policy of military immobilism, where every alternative course of action was assessed solely in terms of military advantage or disadvantage, the West will also be able to counteract the military inflexibility which has permeated through the policy-making levels of most governments. In military parlance 'negotiation' is synonymous with retreat; yet negotiation (not unilateral concession) is an essential method of achieving our objective. Present Western military policy must inevitably be defensive. It must not, however, be allowed to overshadow alternative approaches to the problem which are both more constructive and more offensive. This new objective will restore flexibility to Western deliberations. The West must have a double-sided volicv. On the one hand there must be a politico-military policy against further Communist territorial or ideological expansion; this is largely a defensive policy, which is already in existence as the dominant attitude of the West. The right military mix would need to be assessed primarily on enemy capabilities, moderated by a reasonable assessment of his intentions, but the policy itself would not be dominated solely by military considerations. Equal in importance to this existing defensive element of containment is the other new policy, which is offensive in intent, and which is more directly aimed at the root cause of the conflict. This policy taken in conjunction with effective containment, will aim at creating a situation in which it becomes in the Soviet's own best interests to voluntarily modify their doctrine, or else to declare that its conditions have largely been fulfilled. This offensive policy, with its aim of changing the enemy's mind, will be the dominant factor when considering guidelines for future conduct. In fact, there is nothing very novel in these proposals. Historically, the underlying rationale of a successful foreign policy has always lain in the old adage 'If you can't break it, you must join it'. The West having declined to break the Communists, has however done nothing positive instead, and as a result the problem merely increases. It is not suggested that the West should compromise its principles, nor is that the underlying sense of the old adage. Rather, one 'joins with it', in order to influence it to your way of thinking, so that you may finally achieve your objective, by stealth rather than by head-on clash. Perhaps in unconscious revolt against its past defensive policy, and partly due to the strong military influence, the West constantly thinks, acts and talks in terms of achieving a victory over the Soviets. But in reality the West does not seek to defeat the Russians; if that had been their intention, it should have been attempted directly after the war. Right or wrong, the West A . 33= SOFT ON COMMUNISM . . . .?. has accepted the existence of the Soviets, with the present need for containment, and with coexistence as the remote goal. There is no question of engaging the Soviets unless they attack first, neither is 'Victory' an element in either present or future objectives, unless war should break out. Unfortunately, this residual urge to achieve a victory serves only to distort Western policies and pronouncements, and bears no relation to the main objective of changing the enemy's mind. Referring back to the beginning of this article, I there expressed concern over our lack of flexibility in dealing with the Soviets, which I felt was partly the result of the fear of being termed 'soft on Communism'. T o summarise the argument on how to remedy this state of affairs, which has been expressed in largely military terms, we see that in any Commander's Estimate of the Situation, it is of overriding importance that the correct objective be selected; without that, all-plans and policies must inevitably be misdirected. It is therefore vital that the West should be aware of its correct objective in its conflict with Communism. The present Western objective deals only with the symptoms of the conflict. Containment, as the main objective, can only produce policies which are defensive and inherently military in nature, and thoroughly inflexible. As long as military containment, based upon massive deterrence, is the only objective, a sterile Western policy is inevitable, since too often the only alternatives are nuclear war or Western defeat. Such policies do not offer even the possibility of a favourable solution to the conflict, and meanwhile serve to confirm the Communist belief in their doctrine; this doctrine, the necessity for World revolution, is the root cause of the conflict. Any objective to have a chance of success must attack this root cause. The West's objective should therefore be 'To change the Soviet's mind as to the need for World Revolution'. Until this is done, conflict is inevitable; but if this objective can be achieved, then true coexistence will be possible. Such an objective would include amongst its tasks the previous defensive objective of containment, but both this and other subsidiary tasks would be reinterpreted in the light of the more positive aspects of the main objective. 'To persuade the enemy to change his mind'; this is the classic objective of history. The Soviets wish to convert the West to Communism, thereby altering the whole western way of life. But the correct aim of the West is far more subtle, and in some ways more simple; they only need to persuade the Communists to modify just one element of their doctrine, in a manner no way detrimental to themselves. With this as an objective, the West will have ample room for manoeuvre. Flexibility will return to their policies, and even the task of containment can be carried out less rigidly and military absolutes need no longer be the criteria for governmental policies. There is no pretence that such a change in Communist doctrine can be brought about overnight; it would be a long and tedious policy, requiring great skill and statesmanship. The line between appeasement and attaining the objective would be finely drawn, and its application would need great flexibility and judgment. But such a policy offers a resolution to the conflict; something positive to strive for, even whilst the old objective is still being maintained as an element of the larger plan. Soviet Communism is only one of the many forces and problems in the world today; because it so directly threatens the West, there is a tendency to become com- SOFT ON COMMUNISM . . . . ?. 333 pletely absorbed in it, and to see all other problems in terms of the direct struggle with the Russians. But this new objective of changing the enemy's mind will allow the West to be constructive, and more important, it will bring with it a sense of proportion, so that the West can once again see things in historical perspective. Released from the egocentric and often amoral rationalisations required by the objective of containment, the West will be able to pay more than lip-service to the Ideas which it claims to stand for. Will these conclusions lead people to suppose that I too am 'soft on Communism ?' If so, it will concern me little, for unless I am much mistaken I am in very good company, as it would seem that the present administration's approach to Foreign Policy reflects a very similar line of reasoning. Nor do I claim that there is anything original in my ideas, for certain of the more far-sighted experts on both foreign affairs and Soviet Russia have been propounding such policies for many years past. George F. Kennan was one of the earlier proponents of greater flexibility, even in the dark days of 1947, and similar views are reputed to be held by many of the present State Department teams. When Kennan's ideas reached a mass audience as the result of the B.B.C. Reith Lectures in 1957, they had a tremendous impact largely because they seemed to offer a way of escape from the ever growing dilemma. But though some who understood the subject as well as Kennan, found themselves convinced by the cold logic of his proposals, much of the favourable response reflected the natural human reluctance to face up to any long term unpleasantness. And it was in reaction to this response and the knowledge that the will power of human resistance is weak, that the West sought to bolster their own internal morale. In their concern for any slackening in their people's determination, they tended to dismiss Kennan's proprosals as wishful thinking which placed undue reliance upon Soviet good faith; meanwhile the West stepped up its own external intransigence. Indeed, it can be said that in certain sectors the West has become as much a prisoner of its own propaganda as ever did the Russians. In 1957, I too found Kennan's proposals most beguiling, but like the rest I steeled myself against them, feeling that there must be some flaw; and when Khrushchev was driving so hard for coexistence in 1959, I loudly reasserted that the aims of Communism had not changed, but merely their tactics. This of course was true, but I also echoed the fallacy that we must retain our rigid posture dominated by containment, lest we be seduced by false professions of friendship. This was the direct result of my failing to carry the analysis of the Russian situation through to its logical conclusion. It is strange that whilst we are always seeking indications of internal change in Russia, we fail to take the next step and recognise that our very interest in such a change bespeaks its importance to us, and therefrom deduce that we should do all in our power to bring about such a change. This article has therefore been written in the hope that by adopting a formal and proven deductive process, I may be able to penetrate established attitudes in a Western world which is accustomed to talk casually of 'massive deterrence' and 'mutual national suicide' and where until recently negotiation automatically implied unilateral concessions. I realise that it may even be dangerous to present the argument in such a sketchy form, since it is possible to counter but briefly only some of 334 HISTORY AND TRAINING I N THE NUCLEAR AGE the more obvious objections, but it seemed worth the risk in order to establish quite clearly which of the two alternative policies is not only the most offensive, but also the most clearly in the best interests of the West. It seems to me that it is only those who lack the certainty of purpose, the confidence in their cause and the long-range vision necessary for them to engage and defeat the Soviets at their own game, who are forced to seek the refuge of the weak and obtuse in a policy of negative immobilism. As it is, these same people, who include those who have set themselves up as our contemporary Inquisition, are the very ones who are in fact 'Soft on Communism'. 'WILLOW' History and Training in the Nuclear Age T HIS paper, with a short introduction added, comprises a lecture which I gave to the officers of the America and West Indies Squadron in May, 1934, nearly thirty years ago and just five years before Hitler's war. It was recalled to my memory by one of the subjects quoted for the 1961 Gold Medal competition of the R.U.S.I., viz: 'The introduction of nuclear weapons, both strategic and tactical, would seem to have altered the conditions of any future war completely. Discuss the extent to which the study of past campaigns is still of any value in the training of future commanders of all three Services or could help in the formation of tactical or strategic concepts for use in such a war'. There are many officers who will think that the value now to be obtained from the study of history and of past campaigns must be very small. I should be happy to write at any time a paper to prove the contrary, but educated officers ought really to be able to do it for themselves. First we must be quite clear about what we can get from History. Mainly, it will answer two questions for us:1. What kind of men were the great commanders of the past and what were the chief qualities in their characters ? 2. What are the principles that we find them constantly applying? T o these two we might add: 3. Among the leaders who were defeated, do we find clear evidence that they often failed either due to some defect in their make-up, or to neglecting some of those principles to which all successful leaders attach great importance ? History will not help us to write orders for a battle or a campaign that will cover all possible eventualities, because History shows that to attempt such a thing is and always has been quite futile. But it will help us to find, if we look for them, a number of guiding principles which are of immense value. Napoleon told us to read and re-read the campaigns of the great commanders, for by doing so we can discover principles that guided them to victory and can see at the same time how the violation of sound principles brought ruin to their opponents. Principles have been set down in writing by Napoleon, Foch, HISTORY AND TRAINING I N THE NUCLEAR AGE 335 Clausewitz, Mahan, Richmond, Montgomery and many others, and in every case they have drawn on recorded history to support their opinions. An interesting example is that of Admiral Sir R. Custance, G.C.B., etc., who, before 1914, showed that he was technically up to date by writing books on 'The Ship of the line in Battle', 'The Whitehead Torpedo in War', etc. After the first world war he published, in 1919, a book entitled 'War at Sea': moderr, theory and ancient practice', and his Preface contains these words: 'the object of the author is to spread a knowledge of some principles underlying the conduct of war at sea'. He was of course fully aware of the many lessons that could be drawn from the great war just ended, so readers may be surprised to hear that the period from which he deduced his principles is entirely confined to the wars of the ancient Greeks, between the years 500 and 400 B.c., i.e., well over 2,000 years ago! The truth is of course that sound principles are fundamental and eternal. Many of them will apply to Strategy and even to Tactics, to any fighting service, in any part of the world and in any century. Many of them, though well known to most great Commanders, have never been put down in a set form of words that is accepted by all. But the searchlight of history will always light them up for us, and will show us that they remain unaffected by all technical advances such as the invention of gunpowder, of dynamite, of aircraft and torpedoes, or even of atom bombs. In the paper that follows, the suggestions put forward are based on well-known principles and are likely, I submit, to be as acceptable today as they were 30 years ago. TRAINING OF T H E FLEET I N PEACE ( A lecture delivered in 1934) Gentlemen, this is mainly a short talk to Junior Officers. I propose to range over various subjects all connected with the training of the Fleet, by which I mean the training of officers and men, for you will realise I hope that 'in battle it is not ships that fight, but men'. First, and all the time, one must develop discipline, on which everything else rests, and ability as a Seaman, which makes a man self-reliant and able to think for himself. Discipline and Seamanship in large measure go together, and can be cultivated by General Drill, Boat Sailing, Boat Cruising, etc., combined with parades under arms, landing parties and so on. One must also develop weapon training, and technical knowledge of gunnery and torpedo work. This problem is not easy, because there is never enough time to do all the training we ought to do: also we must remember that too much weapon training may make the men stale or turn them into machines. Too much seamanship may leave them insufficient time to study the weapons they have to handle in battle, and too much discipline, if it be of the wrong sort, may destroy their initiative. We must strike a happy mean, and it is obvious I think that these things require much thought and constant attention, so when you hear someone criticising the sailor, saying he lacks initiative, or is stupid, or the Petty Officers don't take charge properly, I would ask you to remember what Napoleon said: 'There is no such thing as bad men; there are only bad officers.' I want now to suggest to you a few general principles that in my opinion should be applied in our training. 336 HISTORY AND TRAINING I N THE NUCLEAR AGE Ship's companies should be happy and contented, not by being pampered but by knowing that their officers are really anxious to keep them happy. Divisional officers should aim to discover obvious needs, or improvements that can be easily brought about, and any legitimate cause of discontent. Then apply Napoleon's rule 'Faites moi savoir'--i.e. 'Make sure that your captain or senior officers are f d y aware of things they ought to know about, and things that obviously need improvement'. Above all, let us never take ourselves too seriously. Take your job seriously but do not reckon yourself of equal importance. 'Smile, damn you, smile' is a maxim that has hung for some time over my desk and it is addressed to all my staff and particularly to myself. A happy ship, a ship where the men not only respect their Captain but also have a real affection for him, is nearly always a ship where the Captain has a happy disposition, looks and is cheerful, and never (or anyway very seldom!) looks sour, peevish or ill-tempered. OVERWORK AND DECENTRALISATION No one should be consistently overworked in peacetime. I once rather shocked the First Lord by saying 'In War I work 7 days a week, but in Peace I reckon I have done my duty if I stop at 6 days'. I remember a captain who worked his men pretty hard because he had a passion for efficiency. Another captain remarked of him, 'One should keep the pot hotted up and ready to bring to the boil when trouble starts, but it should not be kept constantly boiling over'. Commanders in large ships should learn to reduce their work and to teach younger officers by decentralising. This always works well but of course mistakes are made at times. Some Commanders suffering from 'Promotionitis' will not decentralise for fear that some error by a junior may get them a black mark. Actually, a man can more easily wreck his career by a fear of taking risks and too much 'Safety First'. Without doubt 'Fortune loves a daring suitor' and we may remember Nelson's comment, 'If I had been censured every time I have run my ship or fleets under my command into great danger, I should long ago have been out of the Service and never in the House of Lords'. Life is full of paradoxes. The man who takes most risks will quite likely live longer than the man who is so scared of microbes that he wraps himself up in cotton wool. Officers muit learn to develop qualities of leadership and to remember that the really good officer will, without doubt, always get good results from his men. I t is not only a matter of study and experience but also of character training for, as it was wisely said of certain great leaders in the past, 'If you would do what these men did you must make yourselves what these men were'. Perhaps the most important thing in war is to have sufficiently cultivated the offensive spirit, which goes, of course, with plenty of initiative and unlimited physical courage. General Sheridan in the American Civil War put his finger on a weak spot when he said that certain of the Northern Commanders 'Never went out to lick anybody, but always thought first of keeping from getting licked'. A brilliant contrast is the story of Paul Jones who, having engaged for some time with a larger British ship, was summoned by the Captain to surrender. Jones replied, 'Surrender! Why, I haven't begun to fight yet!' The fight became more and more fierce and finally, thanks to the dominant HISTORY AND TRAINING I N THE NUCLEAR AGE 337 personality of Paul Jones, it was the British ship that had to surrender. It is an ancient military maxim that no battle is ever lost until the General in command thinks he has lost it. Xenophon wisely remarked, 'The good horseman should know neither fear nor anger', which is quite a good rule for officers in time of war. Many things affect the morale of the men, especially the conduct of their C.O. He should always appear to them to be cheerful, confident and efficient, with a good grasp of the whole situation. He must maintain good discipline, but that should not be difficult if he is fair-minded and just. Finally, in all matters requiring his personal attention, he must apply the rule 'See for yourself, and make yourself seen'. This point is of special importance to military officers on the field of battle.* INITIATIVE In the past we have often suffered from signals such as 'Request instructions', from a Junior officer, or 'Follow Senior Officer's motions', from a flag officer. Both of these are detrimental to proper training for war and it has even happened that officers taking their ships into battle have, before opening fire, waited for their Senior officer to do so first. In all detached positions it is the duty of juniors to try to anticipate their Senior Officer's wishes, and the simplest way to do this is to say to yourself, 'What would my Senior Officer wish me to do if he were standing here beside me ?' A sound maxim taught at the Camberley Staff College some 25 years ago was 'Better an error in judgement than a lack of initiative'. TIME 'In war, time is counted in minutes not in hours'. It is impossible to overestimate the importance of this rule. 'Time', said Nelson, 'is everything. I sometimes achieved success simply because I was always ready ten minutes before the other man'. Lord Charles Beresford made a rule in peacetime exercises that he would always start his movements or his offensive immediately the rules permitted him to do so. The Royal Oak was sunk at Scapa Flow because the German 'U' Boat came in immediately the time and tide enabled her to do so: in consequence she got through a narrow passage just before the arrival of a block ship which had been sent up to close it. Vacillation and needless delays nearly always lead to trouble. Hannibal could easily have taken Rome if he had followed up his victorious offensive and pressed straight on to the gates of the city. Quick decisions are often needed in time of war, and sometimes without your possessing more than half the data you would like to be given on the subject. But don't forget that if you wait to get all the information you would like to have, the action you then decide to take may well be too late to be of any use. The 'friction of war' is intense and often causes failure. In peacetime, friction between adjacent commanders sometimes causes discord and discontent: in war it may lose a battle, so 'Never let the sun go down upon your wrath' and eliminate friction by all possible means. This can often be done by good staff work, supplying information to all who ought to have it, etc. One does not want to hear again the * P.S.(1961) The memoirs of Lord Wavell, Lord Montgomery and Lord Alexander show how they always complied with this rule. 338 HISTORY AND TRAINING IN THE NUCLEAR AGE comment of a certain Admiral in the '14-'18 war, who said that he spent more time fighting the Admiralty than fighting the enemy. Officers should set an example of loyalty to their men. One of the commonest forms of disloyalty is criticism, often ill-informed and unjustified, by Junior Officers of their Seniors. 'Any fool can criticise, most fools do7. Constructive criticism is always of value and, though some Junior Officers may not think so, it is nearly always welcomed if it is handed in politely and at the right time. I remember an Admiral in 1916 quoting Nelson:-'See how that noble fellow Collingwood leads his ships into action'. 'Today', he said, 'you are more likely to hear someone say 'Look at that old fool Jones bringing his ship into harbour: I am sure he is going to make a mess of it7. Now, gentlemen I have almost finished. I have not the eloquence to impress on you the great importance of those things I have been speaking of, but I hope you will try to remember them for three reasons. First, I think they may help you to make a success of your own careers-as I hope you all will. Next, the British Empire has never been bigger than it is today: the Navy relatively has seldom been smaller. Mahan, in his fine tribute to Nelson's fleet, said, 'Those far-distant storm-beaten ships, on which the Grand Army had never looked, stood between it and the dominion of the world'. I believe that the utter dependence of the Empire on our Navy today is no less than it was then. Lastly, it may or may not be true of a nation but it must be true of a fighting service, that if you wish for peace you must prepare for war. It is our duty to hope and to work for peace, but it is a sad fact that peace has not been made more secure by British disarmament, or by the conferences of the past 10 years. On the contrary, the cynic would say that those fundamental causes which give rise to wars, such as hunger, greed, the competition for world markets, or hatred and envy of prosperous neighbours, are more widespread on the face of the earth today than at any time in the present century. There is certainly today, as someone said recently, 'an atmosphere in which the doves of peace find the olive branches withering in their amiable beaks'. In such an atmosphere we especially must take pains to be prepared, for those who have seen naval battles will not readily forget the grim truth of that ancient maxim, 'A thousand years scarce serve to form a State, an hour may lay it in the dust'. N.B.-War with Germany came just 5 years later. R. P. ERNLE-ERLE-DRAX Lecture to Officers, At Bermuda. 21.5.34. Little Acorns I WOULD not have you think that in telling this story I found myself a principal in what transpired. I was just one of the several liaison links without, indeed, either the experience or the standing to be capable of anything further. T o be frank, I had hoped for a very different kind of job, and went with reluctance to the American appointment. I now realise that it led to an unique experience, and that the developments to which I was a very minor party had consequences of great significance. One further caveat-I made no private record of the many conversations, interviews and meetings which transpired. I would never have dared to keep that kind of personal record: and so today what I recall is stimulated only by the limited aid of the usual kind of desk diary which just registers day by day the engagements in which I was involved. You should also bear in mind that all this took place twenty years ago, that memory is treacherous, and that inevitably therefore there will be both errors and omissions in my recollection of those events. There is a background to why I was sent to the States in 1940: the direct one that at the time I was available; the indirect one that by nature of my previous appointment I could be expected to have a reasonable insight into the workings of the minds of the United Kingdom War Cabinet Committees and particularly of the Chiefs of Staff, This circumstance had come about as follows. In July, 1939, as a newly promoted Captain I had been appointed an additional Naval Assistant Secretary to the Committee of Imperial Defence; or rather perhaps I should say I was recalled to the Committee because of previous experience of the organisation from 1933 to 1936-better the devil you know than the one you don't, as it were! In the summer of 1939 the Secretariat was already being expanded in anticipation and streamlining itself to convert to the planned War Cabinet Secretariat if the worst came about. Within the potential war organisation the necessity to provide for Anglo-French (I) Military co-ordination was self-evident. It was felt that as a backing to regular Supreme War Council meetings and other direct commerce at the top level, a day-to-day liaison should be established in London in the form of a Committee comprising representatives of the British and French Chiefs of Staff to provide a two-way channel for the conveyance of views, appreciations and the like, and to undertake such exploratory tasks as the Chiefs of Staff collectively wished. I was detailed as the British Secretary to this body whose business, it was envisaged, would be run (secretarially speaking) on the lines to which the Cabinet Office and Committee of Imperial Defence were accustomed, and which I may add had no equal in economy of purpose and effectiveness. A week before war was declared, the French representatives joined their British colleagues in Gwydyr House, Whitehall, and business started. The events that followed over the next ten months until the collapse of France are another story and have no place here. Sufficient to say that things did not always go smoothly. In the light of after events it is clear enough that there was too much wishful thinking engendered largely by the hope that a Western war front on the pattern of 1914-18, with its ghastly casualties, would somehow be avoided. There was, of course, much Military with a capital 'M', implying common inter-Service interests. 339 340 LITTLE ACORNS else in the way of mistaken anticipation which history has since recorded. Anyway, the Allied Military Committee met daily, worked away at appreciations and the like, and kept the Secretariat busy, though I still feel that the contributions were of doubtful value and sometimes 'crossed the bows' of the British Joint Planners. What is relevant to the succeeding narrative is that my secretarial duties included attending as an 'observer' at the daily wartime meetings of the British Chiefs of Staff; acting as Assistant Secretary to six of the eight Supreme War Council meetings which took place alternately in England and France; sometimes also taking notes at particular War Cabinet meetings where Military policy was under discussion; being au fait with other Committee discussions and conclusions either through attendance or by reading up the subsequent minutes; and finally keeping in touch with affairs at the other end through mutual exchanges of visits with Redman (2) at his outpost of the War Cabinet Secretariat alongside the French High Command. All this apart from the natural 'grapevine' available through being a part of the War Cabinet Office with an entree to the Service Ministries. In a way, I was a kind of approved 'fly on the wall' and hence capable of keeping the Allied Military Committee informed of developments relevant to its work and enabling me in my secretarial capacity the better to help in the drafting of the papers and the like arising from across-the-table discussions. Thus, as with other members of the War Cabinet Secretariat, I kept abreast of developments and should have been able to see how the minds of those responsible for the conduct of the war were working, and why. I have no substantial recollection now of what impression it all left on my mind. They were strange 'twilight' months. Only the war at sea was real. Not that the 'Top Level' was taking anything for granted exactly. Queer things were happening. There were apprehensive glances over shoulders at the Balkans. The Russian exploitation of their opportunities was a nagging tooth; and there was a not unexpected lack of confidence in the effectiveness of the Maginot Line which so obviously had open flanks. Nor I think was General Gamelin, the Supreme Commander of the Western armies, any more confident. What, however, the 'inside track' did seem to do for me was, curiously enough, to give me a kind of optimistic outlook; though why that should have been so, I have no idea, except probably that I am one of those people who have a great respect for my seniors and an endemic trust in them; and rightly, as I have long since found to be a fact. Certainly my optimism that things would 'come out in the wash' was of the greatest self-help in my subsequent assignment, though possibly some of those I met then may have thought I was just putting on a front. The blow fell on 10th May, 1940, with the invasion of Holland and Belgium and only three weeks later the evacuation of the B.E.F. was, luckily, in full swing. A fortnight afterwards the Italian vulture swooped and the collapse of the alliance was complete. As for the Allied Military Committee, the armistice was marked in my mind by the appearance of the French members the next morning in plain clothes. My current job seemed to be over. There was a certain amount of 'washing up' to be completed, and I also became Now Lieutenant-General Sir Harold Redrnan, K.C.B., C.B.E.: then a Lieutenant-Colonel. Later the first Secretary to the Anglo-American Combined Chiefs of Staff organisation, and subsequently rose to be in turn Vice-Chief of the Imperial General Staff and Governor and Commander-in-Chief, Gibraltar. LITTLE ACORNS 34I involved in Free French considerations and other committee work; but I had selfishly in the meantime hastily waited on the Naval Secretary in the hope of a sea appointment. Reactions were favourable and I was promised command of our cruiser minelayer, the Adventure, in the near future. And then the personal blow fell. On 8th July, I was sent for by the Vice-Chief of the Naval Staff, Vice-Admiral Phillips, (S) and told that I was being sent to America as an additional Assistant Naval Attache. The gist of the conversation that followed ran something like this: There was the present need to keep as close as possible to American thinking in the event that the States came into the war as an ally. This was particularly so in the field of Naval strategy if overlapping was to be prevented and our collective Naval resources could be then exploited to the best mutual advantage. All this had become still more important *with Italy as an additional enemy, the German occupation of France which opened the gates of the Atlantic to the foe, and with a side glance at the Yellow Peril dormant but potent in the Far East. The Admiraltv was of course in close touch with the U.S. Naval Attach6 and his staff in London, but now it was thought worthwhile to have someone in Washington ready to act as a liaison officer with the U.S. Naval Staff if the latter found that this might serve any useful purpose. Our Naval Attach6 Rear-Admiral Pott, and his lone assistant, a Commander (E), were already necessarily facing an everincreasing load of day-to-day work, and so in any case a further Assistant was desirable. This alone would give me plenty to do, but my particular interest was to remain on call, as it were, for anything the Navy Department might be ready to say in the policy field. Nothing might come of this, probably. It was just a precaution. Steps would be taken to let the Navy Department know that I was available. Anything I had in due course to report should in the proper manner come to the Admiralty from our Naval Attach6, but I could consider myself a kind of personal representative of the Vice-Chief of Staff and if I wanted to write direct to him I should not hesitate, naturally letting my boss, the Naval Attach6, know what I was doing. Finally, I was going because I was immediately available, understood (it was hoped) the machinery of Whitehall, and possessed (again it was hoped) a good idea of how the war was going and what were the high-level feelings about it. I think I was also told that the Americans were shortly to augment their Naval representation in London with a special Naval Mission headed by an Admiral, so that a back link from our side seemed equally desirable. To say that I was appalled would be an overstatement. But I was a bit dismayed. Apart from the fact that my hoped-for ship had gone for a Burton, I couldn't help wbndering in what circumstances the N & ~ e p a r t m e n twould ever contemplate unburdening itself to a junior Captain, particularly if they already had a Flag officer of standing and discretion in London. Moreover, I knew practically nothing of America, and little more of the U.S. Navy than could be culled from 'Jane's Fighting Ships'. I also feared that the Naval Attach6 might well think I was treading on his toes. To a degree I tentatively put up these fences: at once demolished by Admiral Phillips with that beguiling and charming smile of his and 'Well, there you are. Do the best vou can. Good luck'. Manv+ vears before. I had served under him when he was a Commander on the staff of the Commander-in-Chief Mediterranean. I had then developed the highest possible regard for his brains and efficiency, and d Later Admiral Sir Tom Phillips, K.C.B., killed in action in the forlorn hope of intercepting the Japanese seaborne invasion of Malaya. 342 LITTLE ACORNS for his understanding and the encouragement he gave his juniors. This was anyway a compensation for the shock and also put me on my mettle, as it were. The ensuing fortnight was the familiar hectic one for any Naval officer who receives an unexpected appointment. There was the uprooting of the family, resolved through Foreign Office permission to take them to the States with me; there were interviews with the Director of Naval Intelligence (responsible for Naval Attachis), the First Lord of the Admiralty, and the Head of the Foreign Office American Department-I have no recollection whatsoever of the briefing, if any, I received from them. Finally there was the need to turn over my Cabinet Office work to Richard Coleridge ('), say good-bye all round, and get my gear together, borrow a pair of aiguillettes, obtain passports and generally gird the loins. After an uneventful passage in the Britannic we arrived via New York in Washington on 29th July, and were kindly received by the Naval Attach6 and the Embassy as a whole. As someone had forgotten to let the former know of my arrival date, there was difficulty over immediate accommodation for the family, but, like everything else, this was resolved in time and we became conveniently installed in a flat near to my place of work in the Chancery. The usual peacetime routine of visitingcard distribution was started off and arrangements made for me to pay the appropriate official calls. Meantime, protocol was short-circuited by an invitation to come down to the Navy Department and meet the Assistant Chief of Naval Operations, RearAdmiral Ghormley, who was on the point of leading the Mission to London, This I felt was an encouraging sign. Evidently 'the steps had been taken', and though our short meeting did not give rise to any serious conversation, it was helpful to meet the officer who would, I felt sure, carry with him to London the full authority of the Chief of Naval Operations (the equivalent of our First Sea Lord). The second pleasant experience was when I paid my official calls on the Navy Department a few days later and was introduced amongst others to the Director of Naval Intelligence and the Chief of Naval Operations himself. Rear-Admiral Anderson and Admiral Stark respectively could not have been kinder, expressing the hope that the Naval Attach6 and I would not hesitate to approach them whenever we wished, and generally making the newcomer welcome in the inimitable way that Americans have. The ensuing weeks passed quickly enough. Calling and receiving the complimentary returns pursued its inexorable way. There were the kind people who held the familiar small cocktail parties 'to meet our friends'; there were also lunch and dinner parties for the same purpose, and one must admit that it was a startling change from London with its pressing concerns and blanket of nightly darkness, though with inevitable constant backward thoughts of what people there were going throughthe blitz started shortly after our arrival in peacetime America. The confidential news from home was discouraging, and damping to my own optimism. As a minor interest, I should add that personal exchanges of courtesies arose with the Japanese Naval Attach6 and his assistants, and that I had more than one sight of the German and Italian Naval Attachts (both Admirals) at formal neutral Embassy receptions. According to the accepted protocol, warring parties politely affected not to 'see' He had for some time, as Assistant Secretary in the War Cabinet Office, been assisting in Anglo-French liaison duties. Succeeded Brigadier Cornwall-Jones as British Secretary to the Combined Chiefs of Staff organisation. Today Captain Lord Coleridge, C.B.E., Royal Navy and Executive Secretary to the N.A.T.O. Council. LITTLE ACORNS 343 their opposite numbers. There was the occasion when the wife of our Naval Attacht, slowly retreating before a circle of friends-as one does-bumped back to back with the wife of the German Naval Attache, who was doing the same thing. The aplomb withwhich each bowed apologeticallyyet coldly to the other, without speaking, was a perfect example of how such a contretemps should be passed off. During this period of what most would believe were just social junketings, but which all have a purpose, I was not exactly idle. In August the Assistant Naval Attache (E) and I made two visits to New Orleans to inspect and further the purchase of fast motor boats, and there was a great amount to do in connection with the transfer of the fifty U.S. destroyers to the White Ensign, even though the final turnover took place at Halifax. There was also, if I remember rightly, quite an amount of coming and going about the French warships, and the French gold, in Mariinique, and over odd German merchant ships attempting to return home from neutral ports. Towards the end of September there was one social occasion somewhat out of the ordinary. I was invited to dine with Mr. Knox, the Secretary of the Navy, on board the U.S. Navy Department's yacht. During the evening we steamed down the balmy Potomac while dining and subsequently taking things comfortably in long chairs on the poop. The party was not a large one, some half-dozen guests. None of the others as I recollect was a Naval officer, and apart from one member, I never ide7tified what the others did for a living. This in a way was embarrassing, as the postdinner conversation turned exclusively to the war, how we were doing, particularly at sea, and why. Whereas I would have been ready enough to say all I really knew (as far as it went) to Mr. Knox himself, I hesitated considerably in an unidentified company. At the same time I naturally didn't want to give an impression that I knew more than I did, and be rated a conceited young pup. I'm sure that Mr. Knox was only extending a kindly hand to a newcomer, and at the same time sizing me up for what, if anything, I might be worth; but it was still a curious feeling to find oneself a lone 'Limey' in the company of an evidently exclusive and erudite American circle. Four days after the above occasion, on 27th September, the world heard of the German-Italian-Japanese Pact. The Axis was complete, and the future looked dark indeed. A week later I was called to the Navy Department and found myself closeted with the Director of Plans, Captain Turner. For nearly two hours he talked, and I listened. And so for the first time I was given a real chance to see the war at sea through American eyes as presented by an officer of the highest quality. He never minced his words, it was not in his nature. Many of his observations were hard to take, but everything he said bore the stamp of a professionally objective approach without fear or favour. It was an object-lesson in how an oral appreciation should be presented and, I would add, I always subsequently met that kind of honest, objective, down-to-earth approach to any subject-even if it hurt-by American Naval officers both in the ensuing months and again in the last years of the war when I was back in America in another capacity. On this occasion there was no precise talk of what the U.S. Navy would do in any kind of war situation. The appreciation was broader than that; on the lines of what had to be done at sea and where, as it were, we were not succeeding or could not succeed. During the following week I was twice sent down to the Navy Department under instructions to raise matters unconnected with sea strategy, and then at the end of October I was once again invited to attend in the afternoon. This time I was led 344 LITTLE ACORNS by the Director of Plans direct to Admiral Stark. The Chief of Naval Operations opened the conversation by almost casually saying that they were proposing to show me the American Navy's plan for war against Japan, something which he added no outsider had so far ever read. I stammered my thanks and just retained sufficient composure to ask whether I was allowed to tell the Admiralty of what I might hoist in. The reply was a simple one. 'You wouldn't be much use if you couldn't', adding with a twinkle, 'I hope your cyphers are secure'. With that I was sternly led away; not sure from Captain Turner's attitude whether I was a criminal going to the last drop, or a pet who should be humoured! In the Director of Plans' room a safe was opened and I was handed a huge tome and invited to sit down and digest its contents at my leisure. Captain Turner, in passing over the volume, observed with a kind of wry smile: 'We've other plans in this safe-war with Great Britain is one of them'. And of course very sensible too, but in the circumstances I didn't ask whether I could have a glance at that also, just as a matter of personal interest! The Director then excused himself, said he had other work to do and the room was mine, and vanished. T o this day I have wondered whether this was a tactful hint that if he wasn't there I would feel free to take surreptitious notes. Certainly I did not. After all, I felt that would be going too far, apart from the security angle. But what faced me was stupendous. The 'Plan' was comprehensive to the last degree. Chapter after chapter; ranging from principles through strategic intentions to allocation of forces, command structures, responsibilities, communications, logistic support and so on. I could necessarily do little more than skim the outlines and try to get some overall picture into my mind, and twenty years after I remember very little of what I read. It was, however, enough to impress me with certain salient points amongst which, again if I'm not confusing that occasion with later events, was the intention to keep the main U.S. naval strength concentrated in the central Pacific-to wit, Pearl Harbour-and carry forward from there a step-by-step offensive advance westwards to Japan. Just as in reality the American Pacific strategy ultimately took form. What the Plan did not cater for, nor at the time did I, for one, even think of such a thing, was the treacherous initial blow which at once severely circumscribed the opening phases. After about two hours my reading came to an end and late into the night I shut myself up in the Chancery and composed the telegraphed and follow-up written reports. I recollect that Admiral Stark was that evening giving an At Home at which my wife and I were to be amongst the guests. I think he will have realised why I excused myself at the last moment. Three days later I was down in the Plans Division again when Captains Turner and Cooke (=)showed me further papers which expressed the Naval Staffs' appreciation of the situation which might arise in certain contingencies; and in the weeks following, my engagement book shows several further visits, presumably on the same subjects. Meantime, developments had evidently proceeded apace in London. Cabinet Officer papers sent to the Embassy showed that Admiral Ghorrnley had long since been close to our Chief of Staff. I emphasise this lest you should think that I was the only channel conveying the consequences of the American forthcoming attitude. Both subsequently rose to high rank with great responsibilities during the war. LITTLE ACORNS 345 Actually I feel sure that earlier and more authoritative information had been provided by the U.S. Mission in London. I have never heard since whether what I reported coincided with the information provided by Admiral Ghormley. Obviously he would be the more experienced observer, and at the best I only hope that my limited understanding may have helped to dot a few 1's and cross some T's. What arose, and quickly, from the moment when Japan showed its Axis hand was the clear sign that the sands of time were running out and that there was nearly a need for Staff discussions of some kind between the two potential allies if only to ventilate the inevitable differences of opini~nand try and reach a common appreciation of probabilities and who should do what with which if, with emphasis on the 'if', the United States joined the war with us. Politically this was tricky. The isolationists were by no means a negligible quantity, and though the President had already gone a long way in openly indicating where American sympathies should and did lie, the decision to hold Staff talks, if it became known, could easily have been interpreted as highly improper in that by inference it would commit the country to a war alliance and prejudice America's neutrality. I do not know how agreement was reached in the matter--obviously our Ambassador, the State Department and the President himself will have been closely involved; and conceivably it is relevant that the latter was re-elected for a further term of four years on 5th November, a few days before Air Vice-Marshal Slessor (') arrived, representing the British Chiefs of Staff, to further the idea, authoritatively armed to lift the subject on to the high plane in concert with our Embassy. I really played little part in this stage beyond briefing the Air Vice-Marshal as best I could on what had so far transpired, and listening in on the several meetings he had with our Embassy and also those of the Dominions. Meantime the Navy Department was kind enough to keep me in the picture of how minds were working. I recollect one such occasion when I met the Staff Officer, Plans, to the Commander-in-Chief Pacific Fleet, and heard of the interesting things he had to say. All this was a helpful background to the time when for sure the Staff conversations would start. Meanwhile, I had the more routine work to do in assisting the Naval Attache in the variety of problems that kept cropping up; amongst them, dealing with the steady trickle of enthusiastic inventors, each of whom professed to have the certain answer to a successful sea war. Some ideas were not unexpectedly ones which, unknown to their originators, had long since been developed. Others were just cranky dreams. For example; (complete with drawings) we should envelop all our ships with thick rubber mattresses so that torpedoes would bounce off and explode harmlessly at a distance! In December another straw in the wind became visible when the Admiralty was invited to send Naval 'observers' to the U.S. Pacific Fleet. This was an invaluable suggestion. Unlike to day, where N.A.T.O. ensures that all the fighting services of the allies have common 'fighting' systems (including above all one comprehensive and common set of communications) and regularly practise operating together, no such thing existed then. America and ourselves had in no way been in alliance since 1918. U.S. Navy techniques were in several ways very different, and even elementary manoeuvring together at sea, involving as it did flag and radio signals, would Now Marshal of the Royal Air Force Sir John Slessor, G.C.B., D.S.O., M.C.; Chief of the Air Staff, 1950-52. 346 LITTLE ACORNS have been impossible without at least mutual liaison teams on board all respective units. The American invitation enabled the Royal Navy better to get to know potential opposite numbers, and it should be said that we also had something to subscribe from over a year's bitter experience, which might be helpful to the U.S.N. Evidently the Admiralty fully appreciated the value of the suggestion, for the half-dozen officers picked were up-and-coming ones with more than average qualities. By all subsequent account, they were made very welcome in the Pacific Fleet, and their services became greatly valued in both directions. Each was an executive specialist in a particular field. It seems I passed on the first three, complete with their orders, on 9th December, just a year before America came into the war. On 24th January, 1941, Lord Halifax arrived off Annapolis in H.M.S. King George V, to take on the post of Ambassador to the United States in the place of the late Lord Lothian. Rear-Admirals Bellairs and Danckwerts (9 had also taken passage as the nominated Naval Members for the forthcoming Staff conversations, and with them came Lieutenant-Colonel Cornwall-Jones one of the War Cabinet Office secretariat, to act as Secretary to the British Delegation. The other two U.K. representatives, Major-General Morris (9 and Air Vice-Marshal Slessor, arrived almost simultaneously by air. For myself, I had rather anticipated that it would fall to my lot to act as Secretary. Instead I was told that I was nominated as an additional member of the Delegation. Observing the seniority of the other members and that one and all had a professional past history as Directors of Plans in their respective Services, I did feel considerably out of place, but somewhere behind I sensed Admiral Phillips saying 'Thank you', and I do hope that I kept sufficiently quiet over the ensuing months in the surrounding of officers with far more 'know-how' than I possessed. At least I was able at the start to put our representatives from overseas in the local picture, and also help Cornwall-Jones to settle in on his not inconsiderable forthcoming responsibilities. An office was set up for our party in a converted Embassy bedroom and the first few days after arrival were devoted to exchanging calls, meeting the U.S. representatives and discussing and settling procedure and the like. As regards security, the visitors came disguised as an augmentation to the already functioning British Purchasing Commission to the States. This was a very thin cover and I am morally certain that their real purpose must soon have become known to at least a few people not supposed to be acquainted with what was going on. If it did reach the ears of any of the top-level Pressmen permanently close to American Government affairs in Washington, it certainly says much for their discretion and understanding that, as far as I know, not a single word of U.S.-U.K. Staff conversations ever appeared in public print. The first full meeting took place on 31st January, and discussions continued throughout the next two months. There were in all nineteen collective meetings, The late Rear-Admiral R. M. Bellairs, C.B., C.M.G., for many years after the war Head of the Admiralty Historical Section: and the late Vice-Admiral V. H. Danckwerts, C.B., C.M.G., who died on service during the war while Deputy Commander-in-Chief, Eastern Fleet. Later relieved Brigadier Redman as British Secretary to the Combined Chiefs of StafT organisation. Today Brigadier A. T. Cornwall-Jones, C.M.G., C.B.E., on the Directing Staff of the Administrative Staff College. Now General Sir Edwin Morris, K.C.B., O.B.E., M.C. LITTLE ACORNS 347 not to mention a number of informal gatherings of individuals for more informal talks. Each party tabled many papers and appreciations. It was altogether a very busy time, and the number of meetings alone should indicate the wide range of matters ventilated, all inter-related in the search for a common strategic policy and the means thereto if, as I have already emphasised, the United States entered the war on the side of the Allies. On the whole the talks went well, with digerences of opinion, naturally, but without rancour; and were probably helped by the fact that the examination of the potential situation was uninhibited by political considerations. It was for the parties concerned to report collectively to their respective chiefs on where they had found common grounds for agreement and, for that matter, where they had not; and to make such combined recommendations as they together saw fit. The injection of political considerations was for higher authority and not for professional sailors, soldiers and airmen. I would be only guessing now if I tried to expose all the subject-matter which came up. The potential Naval position at the start obviously predominated in relation to the opening war phase. Here, maritime areas of primary responsibility were not difficult to decide upon, but it was a great deal more difficult to agree on the desirable initial dispositions of the collective Naval forces likely to be available. Indeed, only a measure of agreement was ultimately found, with reservations on the part of both delegations. Understandably, the Americans' first consideration was to ensure the security of the western seaboard of the States from surprise aggression, while British eyes unavoidably turned towards Australasia and the East Indies area, the defence of which was not only a moral responsibility but a highly desirable practical aim. With the initiative in Japanese hands, either a main drive eastwards across the Pacific or one south and westwards from Japan was equally possible and, even to a degree, both could be undertaken simultaneously with sufficient strength to preoccupy considerable allied naval forces. In South-East Asia Britain possessed the main base of Singapore and in mid-Pacific there was Pearl Harbour. Each was in effect a focal point from which a Japanese forward movement should be circumscribed and from which the forces needed to take the offensive at the earliest moment could be launched. Our difficulty was that the Royal Navy was already stretched to the limit in holding the Mediterranean position, fighting the Battle of the Atlantic and maintaining a sufficient capital ship strength in northern waters to deal with any break-out of German heavy ships. If Japan declared war, there was virtually nothing of substance to spare for Far Eastern waters (or even the Indian Ocean) in support of the small Dutch East Indies Fleet and the few warships of Australia and New Zealand. One suggestion made was that the Americans should consider basing some proportion of their main Pacific Fleet on Singapore as an insurance; or at least stockpiling reserves of stores and ammunition at that base in anticipation of a need to operate thence; but this idea of dividing their available Pacific forces proved unacceptable. The compromise, such as it was, was that sufficient heavy units would remain with their Atlantic Fleet to relieve our main Home Fleet of some of its inexorable responsibilities and so permit of a British task force moving eastwards in the event of a Japanese drive south-westwards. As it all came about, it was of paramount necessity to transfer units from their Atlantic Fleet to the Pacific because of the losses at Pearl Harbour; and the force the Admiralty was able to send to the Malayan area was both unbalanced and inadequate for the purpose. The Japanese massive drive south-westward swept all before it and for a time the new enemy 348 LITTLE ACORNS even possessed virtual control of the Indian Ocean. It is not at all easy to be wise afier the event. Japan could always have readjusted its initial strategy in the light of the actual Anglo-American dispositions. There could, too, have been two simultaneous surprise 'TarantosY-one on Pearl Harbour and one on Singapore. It would have been well within the resources of the Japanese carrier strength. War Colleges have no doubt since 'played' many 'games' with different initial strategic settings. The discussions ended on 29th March, 1941, with a plenary meeting to sign the combined report to our superiors in the form of our respective Chiefs of Staff. The date is implanted in my mind because my wife had only the day before undergone a serious and successful operation in the Johns Hopkins Hospital at Baltimore; and it should be recorded that the surgeon who undertook the job subsequently tendered a fee which bore no relation to what should have been charged. My feeble protests were silenced by his statement that it was just his small contribution to 'British Aid'. How very, very kind of him. It has never been forgotten by us. There were important immediate consequences arising from the conclusion of these long-drawn-out discussions; but before I refer to them something happened a week previous to the finale which was both interesting and may be of considerable significance. On occasions since I had arrived in the United States I had been asked how the overall direction of the war was exercised by us, with particular reference to the Chiefs of Staff organisation and the War Cabinet Office machinery to provide the means through which co-ordination of thinking and execution could be achieved. Well, that was something about which I did know a good deal. Cornwall-Jones, subsequent to his arrival, was also similarly interrogated, and incidentally gave practical evidence of how things did work. After all, the American representatives at the talks had their superiors locally to hand and could so simply by visit discuss progress, obtain guidance and so on. It was different with the visitors. Their Chiefs of St& were far away in London. Yet it must have been apparent that the British representatives were able to discuss with one voice in a corporate capacity and that consequently their briefing and guidance stemmed from a corporate source. The reasonu7asstraightforward enough: the minutes of meetings and our delegation's comments upon them, were remitted back to the War Cabinet Office in London and thence to the Chiefs of Staff Committee or other supporting inter-Service bodies as may have been appropriate for collective consideration, comments and the preparation of further guidance where necessary. There was really no parallel to this in Washington circles. So anyway it was that on 20th March I have a note that I, with Cornwall-Jones, Air Vice-Marshal Slessor and two members of the Embassy staff were invited to lunch with Mr. Fielding Elliott, the well-known and distinguished writer on politicomilitary matters. There we found ourselves in company with several Americans in U.S. Government Departments. After lunch we settled to discuss, 'off the record', for over two hours the virtues (and defects) of our pre-war Committee of Imperial Defence co-ordination machinery and its subsequent functioning in its War Cabinet Office guise. I expect we all talked a lot. The trend was certainly on the lines of what the Americans might feel was useful to them. Why Mr. Fielding Elliot had taken the initiative I don't pretend to know. What I do feel is that though the ball may well have started rolling earlier, that afternoon must have caused it to accelerate. I am not for a moment suggesting that co-ordination of Military thought was unknown in American circles-that would be absurd- LITTLE ACORNS 349 but certainly when the Anglo-American Combined Chiefs of Staff organisation in due course came into being, the implementation of the business ran, by all accounts, smoothly from the start. The U.S. Joint Chiefs of Staff and the British Chiefs of Staff both functioned in corporate capacities and were both supported by similar organisations and comparable Secretarial facilities. The combination of these similar means to provide the combined and concerted Military advice to the heads of Government hence presented no difficulty. The only differences really in the composition of the two allied bodies was that the American Chiefs of Staff had a Chairman in the person of the Chief of Staff to the President in the latter's capacity of Commander-in-Chief of all American Forces, while the British Chiefs of Staff had no separate Chairman and instead, as an additional member, the Chief St& Officer to the Prime Minister in his capacity also as Minister of Defence. The American Professor Johnson, in his comprehensive historical analysis 'Defence by Committee', goes a good deal further than I can, and makes much play with the growth in effectiveness of our Committee of Defence organisation over the pre-war years, and how the Americans in essence ultimately adopted the system wholeheartedly, greatly to their subsequent advantage and to that of the Allied cause. I believe that afternoon in Mr. Fielding Elliot's private room had much to do with what later transpired. An immediate consequence of the end of the Staff talks was a generous suggestion by the Navy Department that a visit should be made to the Commander-in-Chief, U.S. Pacific Fleet, to tell him of what had transpired as seen by our side. This offer was accepted with gratitude and appreciation of the liberal thought behind it. It was decided that Admiral Danckwerts should undertake the visit, and he took me with him. While therefore the rest of the Mission returned to the U.K., we flew out to Hawaii, arriving on 9th April, and spent two days hospitably housed by the Commander-in-Chief in his own quarters. During this time my Admiral exposed our thoughts to the Commander-in-Chief, his Chief of Staff and others; we were toured round the Fleet and met a great many evidently extremely busy people. It was quite clear that America's main forces were exercising hard in every way, certain that the trial of strength was sure to come, sooner or later. It was my first, though not my last visit to Pearl Harbour, and greatly impressed me with the efficiency and scope of that great bastion and main Pacific base. The most interesting moment as far as I was concerned occurred when, in the dog watches of the second day, and while my Admiral was out about some business, the Commander-in-Chief unexpectedly appeared in our sitting-room where, I fancy, I was taking it easy with my feet up. He had come, he said, for a yarn, but the conversation was quickly led by him to the lately released facts about the Matapan engagement, which had taken place some ten days previously. Evidently, he assumed, we were prepared for close night action encounters with heavy ships, and what about it ? I gave him as well as I could the story of our Navy's change of policy after Jutland. Up to then it had been considered imprudent voluntarily to engage major units in night action, the accidents of chance being too heavy to accept, but subsequently our attitude had undergone a fundamental change and, far from declining such close encounters, we had trained assiduously between the wars not only to be in a position to accept the opportunities, but to court them if conditions looked right. Our belief was that word-perfect drill from the Captain downwards and splitsecond timing would provide the means of, essentially, getting the initial, and usually 350 LITTLE ACORNS vital, broadside off first. (I write of the days when the limit of range was just that of the searchlight and/or starshell). I was cross-examined. How many annual practices with main armament had we regularly carried out, what was the 'word-perfect drill' and so on ? I did my best to answer, and the Admiral concluded the gentle inquisition by observing that the big ships of the U.S.N. had not for a considerable number of years (I think he said) indulged in similar night main armament firing exercises. The tailpiece to this is that not much later one of our Naval 'observers7-a gunnery specialist-actually delivered himself of a detailed paper on night action procedure as practised by the Royal Navy which, I have heard, was well received in the U.S. Pacific Fleet. Whatever may or may not have been the direct consequences, it is certainly a fact that their heavy ships did subsequently engage in such night actions with admirable results; the Surigao Straits action is a case in point. My heart bled for Admiral Kimmel later when I read that he had been held in part to blame for the unreadiness at Pearl Harbour on 7th December, 1941, and I have since often wondered what it was held he should have done in anticipation without receiving a direct warning that the Japanese were on the warpath. It must have been the bitterest of blows to him to be deprived of his great command at the moment of war after all he, with his drive and energy, had done to bring it to a peak of efficiency. It is a sad reflection that frequently in the past the existing Military leaders at the outbreak of a major war have soon been displaced because of alleged inadequacy; a condition which was almost always due to causes beyond their control. When the enemy is a ruthless aggressor without conscience or any intention of conforming to international decencies or the once accepted rules of war, anything can happen, and anticipation of the moment or the circumstances would require a remarkable second sight. I t can happen again. Possibly a 'Limey', such as I, should not so intrude, but my sympathy remains. You will see how impressed I was by Admiral Kimmel in such a short period of two days only. An important outcome of the talks was an agreement that if America entered the war, British Staff Missions should be set up in Washington to represent respectively the Admiralty, War Office and Air Ministry, with their Heads collectively representing the British Chiefs of Staff Committee in day to day business with the American Chiefs of Staff. Moreover, in anticipation of this arrangement, it would be provident to establish a nucleus of that Joint Mission without undue delay. This involved those of us already in Washington in the necessary preparations to receive this nucleus; and on our return from Pearl Harbour we all got down to it. Admiral Danckwerts assumed the post of Designate Head of the nucleus Naval Staff Mission, and concerned himself primarily with the inevitable 'follow-ups' to the talks with the Navy Department. I realigned myself as his Chief Staff Officer and mainly concerned myself, in concert with the British Purchasing Mission and appropriate U.S. authorities, in obtaining office and living accommodation for the impending influx. I also, as it were, rejoined the War Cabinet Office temporarily, once again, as an Assistant Secretary to open up an outpost in Washington of that machinery to serve the Heads of the Missions in their joint liaison capacity. Six weeks later, on 1st June, the nucleus Mission arrived--one hundred strong, including a feminine element in the form of W.R.N.S. cypher officers. With the contingent came Belben to relieve me as Chief Staff Officer to the temporary Head ANGLO-AMERICAN RELATIONS 35I of the Naval Mission, and Coleridge once again to relieve me, this time as Secretary to the Joint Missions. Admiral Phillips had not forgotten his assurance that I should go to sea when the time was ripe. Three days were enough for the usual 'turnovers', and three more to pack, say my farewells, depart for New York and an uneventful passage in a Dutch trooper to England. Under a month later I hoisted my pendant in a cruiser of the Home Fleet, and subsequent events provide quite a different kind of story. I would like to conclude by putting on record for what it may be worth my profound respect and admiration for all those in the U.S. Navy Department and further afield with whom I had become associated during that out-of-the-ordinary period in my Service career. They were, one and all, always downright and objective. They were never evasive, while yet sympathetic and understanding. They were, moreover, personally charming, kindly and hospitable to a stranger such as I. Of course their views and approaches to the common problems were different. Their first concern was naturally for the security of the United States, and for them Japan was the predominant threat to that security. When it is borne in mind that to American eyes in 1940-41 we were well on the way to losing the war (and were they so wrong ?) it is all the more remarkable that they were still prepared, and wholeheartedly too, not just to converse with us, but to go much further and collaborate in concerting arrangements for Allied co-operation in the event that war came to them. In effect, everything they did and said committed them to our side and evidently as they saw it in support of the right as against the wrong. It is perhaps difficult these days to realise what a momentous decision that really was then-a decision which was, I feel, not just a State one, but also individual. Both practically and morally it was of incalculable value to us. I certainly hadn't the vision at the time to see where it was all going to lead; but we have since-and may this mutual understanding and cooperation long continue. 'ONLOOKER' Anglo- American Relations I had a variety of 'hats' to wear in Washington, but the one most frequently on my head was undoubtedly that symbolising my responsibilities as Commander of the British Naval Staff. With this hat went the responsibility for initiating, watching and furthering Admiralty interests with the United States Navy. The extent to which I and my staff were able to deal with this responsibility was dependent not only on our knowledge of, and our contacts with, the United States Navy and with the industrial activity which supports it, but also on the relations that existed between our two countries and particularly between our two Navies. The establishment, maintenance and improvement of these relations were therefore never far from one's thoughts, and quite often in one's hair. Present day relations between our two countries rest primarily I suppose on our common history and instutitions, reinforced by our partnership and common experience in World War 11. There is nothing in writing that I know of to govern 3s2 ANGLO-AMERICAN RELATIONS the relations that rest on these things, but much good-will, respect and inherent trust stems from them. As the years pass however, the impact of our past 'togetherness' is becoming obscured in a rapidly changing worid, particularly now that men who worked together in World War I1 are moving into retirement. More specifically, but to a lesser extent, our relationship rests on our joint membership of U.N., N.A.T.O., S.E.A.T.O. and C.E.N.T.O. In the various regional agreements we in the U.K. are but one of several countries and the forces we might provide in support of these pacts are not such as to put us in any special position. Furthermore it is clearly not feasible for the United States to favour the United Kingdom in this setting--officially at any rate-any more than any other member. But the fact is that we and the United States are the only two countries who are members of all these pacts, and as a result we are used to each others' faces and this helps to strengthen our partnership. Finally, there is Interdependence. This intended shot in the arm to AngloAmerican relations in the field of defence administered by the President and our Prime Minister in 1957 misfired. If, as I have always supposed, Interdependence was meant to mean depending on each other, it was perhaps somewhat naive to suppose that the united stateswould depend on us for ;nything that their Government could develop and produce themselves. Perhaps it was equally naive of us to suppose that we would be able to afford to buy the modern weapons and weapon systems we might like to have from the United States. Interdependence is a vague word. It can mean much or nothing. Our politicians still use it considerably in their speeches, but I doubt if they have a clear concept of what they mean. I am even more doubtful if any one else does. In the United States it was never taken seriously and is now forgotten. We might well do the same. However, the Interdependence agreement put a spur to technical co-operation between the two countries, and the joint agencies that flowed fkom this have done much useful work, particularly in the research area. Again, the Interdependence agreement cleared the way for bilateral agreements of real value in the nuclear field. In general then, it might be fair to say that through our joint membership of the united Nations and various regional agencies, we are a close ally of the United States, and that our 'togetherness' in the past bolstered by recent bilateral agreements and arrangements puts this alliance on a special plane. I do not think the alliance will stay on this special plane unless sufficient people on each side of the Atlantic are convinced that it should, and see that it does. From the American point of view, the benefits accruing from this special relationship are apt to look a little thin, concerned as they are with such intangibles as British experience, our focal position in the Commonwealth (a subject of much misconception), our links w i t h ~ u r o and ~ e our common heritage. Many Americans are too prone to measure usefulness as an ally in terms of dollars and weapons to enable them to value these benefits correctly. Furthermore they are understandably reluctant to take advice from a much smaller and weaker nation. Nevertheless there is no doubt that a great number of Americans continue to think of us as a special friend and ally. I had constant evidence of this as I travelled about the country. Often it was expressed by ordinary people; there was no doubt it was genuine. Indeed the general image we project across the Atlantic is good in spite of the stones that get thrown at it. There is also no doubt in my mind that the majority ANGLO-AMERICAN RELATIONS 353 of those in positions of responsibility feel our two countries to be complementary and that our special relationship is essential to the strength of the West. I t is not easy for them to admit this officially for fear of the effect such views might have on their relationship with other nations of the West, but unofficially, and where matters can be carried on without publicity, there is no doubt we receive special and beneficial treatment. For instance, the British Naval Staff in Washingtonsome sixty persons-is housed rent free in the Old Navy Building alongside most of the U.S. Navy departments with whom it deals. From the British point of view the benefits accruing from this special relationship would appear obvious to anyone who believes we need an efficient and effective defence, and who believes that, despite our comparative weakness, we have a vital contribution to make to the overall strength of the West and to the maintenance of peace by virtue of our experience and position in the world. Yet we seem very apathetic and very inactive in our relations with the United States. At times we almost seem to be doing more to undermine the alliance than strengthen it. Looked at from the other side of the Atlantic, our approach to the Americans often seemed badly thought out, sometimes tactless. Many of the stream of visitors sent out by service departments at home seemed unnecessary, duplicating the work of other visitors or the staff on the spot; and the patience of the Americans was on occasion worn thin by our enquiries and search for knowledge only to find later that we did not intend to do anything with it. Again, our Service departments never seemed to appreciate U.S. Security regulations and at times failed to comply with them; and sometimes visitors offended by trying to find out more than was necessary for the task in hand. Such things strained our relationship from time to time, something which could have been avoided with more understanding and effort on our part. It says much for the U.S. leaders that such strains were not allowed to produce breaks. I have a feeling that when the representative of a British Government department approaches a French or German Government department on some matter of importance, the method of approach is given thought and the contact is made with circumspection. But when it comes to dealing with Americans we do not seem to bother much. We feel we are dealing with people of the same blood (cousins if you like) who are bound to have the same thought processes and feelings as ourselves, like the man in the next office. So we give little or no thought to the approach, blunder straight in and then cannot understand where things went wrong. In this connection I am intrigued by the fact that when an Englishman goes to France or Germany, or any other country, he expresses surprise in finding that the people do certain things the same way as the British. 'Why! We have a system just like that' you can almost hear him exclaim. But when an Englishman goes to the States, he is not a bit surprised at similarities. What shocks him, and indeed is likely to bring forth critical remarks, are the many things he finds done differently. To my mind, misguided behaviour on our part towards Americans stems from two roots--or rather is caused by lack of roots where roots should be. In spite of the power and importance of the United States in the World, British people make little effort to learn about her history and civilisation or about her geography. And because she is so far away and so large, very few British people get the opportunity to know Americans and their way of life. These two shortcomings lead to a marked 354 A LAYMAN LOOKS AT THE NUCLEAR NAVY lack of understanding. We take it for granted that Americans are made in our own image. They are not. There is another aspect I have noticed since returning. It is that we seem to be growing increasingly suspicious that Americans are 'nuzzling in' on our preserves and using our retreat from colonialism to advance their own big business. They undoubtedly are. They are a virile go-ahead people. Their action should not engender suspicion and distrust. They should be a spur to our own efforts in the business and commercial world. Maybe the Americans are suspicious of us too at times, but on the credit side they learn British history at school and substantial numbers of them get or make the opportunity to work or travel in England. Maybe this is why today Americans seem to me to be more tolerant and understanding of the British than we are of them. T o sum up, we need to maintain and indeed strengthen the special relationship that exists today between the United States and the United Kingdom. This partnership is essential to the overall strength and unity of the West and to the preservation of peace. If this partnership is to remain effective in the future, at a time when our strong ties of the past are fading and relative British power is declining, positive efforts must be made. On our part, I would like to see more encouragement given the young to learn about the United States and later to visit the Country. Quite a number of girls are today improving their knowledge and experience by taking temporary jobs in the United States. Young men should be given opportunities to do the same. Then I would like to see many more exchanges. At present, so far as I know, these are confined to a few students, teachers, Service officers and clergymen. Surely the whole scope of this scheme could well be widened to include greater numbers of many professions. Finally we should take trouble individually to understand Americans, their background and their way of life. So many of us take for granted that Americans have so much in common with us that there is no real problem here. In fact there is. It would be better if we were to look on them more as people of a foreign landwhich indeed they are, a people with whom we wish to maintain a particularly close friendship. GEOFFREY THISTLETON-SMITH A Lavman Looks at the Nuclear Navy YR harbour at 0500 isn't a place to be recommended on a cold, wet June dayespecially without any prospect of breakfast and last night's British Railways' dinner a dim and not very happy memory. Only one of our little group seemed unaffected-a disgustingly cheerful Scot complete with tam o'shanter. Full of porridge and bonhomie his red face was in marked contrast to the grey and pinched countenances of us Sassenachs. Alongside the jetty was a black and yellow Admiralty P.A.S. M.F.V. 'all right, gentlemen-let's go', said our escort, a Lieutenant (JG) from the U.S. Navy H.Q. in A A LAYMAN LOOKS AT THE NUCLEAR NAVY 355 London. He tried to sound 'on the ball' and confident but the prospect of a trip for five hours in an M.F.V. daunted even him. I know, because he'd asked me where the boat was as we stood on the jetty alongside her! There wasn't room for everybody below so we took it in turns to get 'a breath of fresh air'. But after a while as we rounded the southern tip of Arran there was more space below-and less in the heads. Those of us still on our feet sniffed round the wheelhouse and galley but, despite the growing protests from our stomachs, raw potatoes-even if they were Arranswere a bit too much. Not so much as a sniff of kye or tea did we find. Meanwhile our skipper eyed us from the comfort of the wheelhouse over a cup of steaming coffee. At length some trans-Atlantic tones crackled over the T.B.S. in the wheelhouse but we could still see nothing. Those of us who'd been in the Regiment began trying to brush up our knowledge of submarines. An old acquaintance from the home of Fleet Street's 'Crusader' volunteered that he'd been a scribe aboard the Prince of Wales for the Atlantic Charter Meeting but he didn't think that would help much. I tried to remember what happened during the couple of hours I'd spent submerged many years ago in an 'S' boat off Portland but all I could remember were some shots from 'We Dive at Dawn' which had recently been shown to some local Sea Cadets to encourage them to become submariners. After a good deal of rather one-sided dialogue on the T.B.S. (I believe it's called something different now) we finally saw a dark grey shape parting itself from the equally dark grey background of the Mull of Kintyre. After a few more minutes we were able to distinguish the outline of a submarine coming towards us with quite a bone in her teeth. So this was a nuclear submarine! The most distinctive feature was the two fins on either side of the 'sail' (never conning tower). She circled us once-no doubt for the benefit of the photographers and T.V. cameramen who were, for the most part, just awakening to the grim realisation that they would, literally, have to stand on their own feet. The Officer of the Deck (no such thing as the O.O.W. in U.S.N. parlance) surveyed us from his perch on one of the fins and then went below on being relieved by the Captain. Forward, a small party had scrambled through a door in the side of the sail and were busily securing themselves with lifelines to ringbolts in the hull-there being no casing. For some time we wondered how we were to go aboard. Visions of a soaking wet, black night in a dockyard tug waiting for three hours trying to secure alongside Herrnes off Spithead came to my mind. Even our cheerful Scot looked a little apprehensive I was happy to see while our escort officer seemed to have acquired new hope now that there seemed to be a chance of escaping from these mad Limeys in their doggone bumboat. He was only worried that we might not, in the end, get alongside at all. With a beautiful bit of handling our skipper brought the M.F.V.'s bows to within two or three feet of the submarine's bow. But even that distance is an awfully long way if you're humping about half a hundredweight of T.V. camera and gear costing about .&2-3,000 with you. Our ruddy Scot led the way with a passable imitation of a surprised Monarch of the Glen. Before he could slither very far down the sloping hull he was grabbed by two ratings and almost carried to the sail door. The rest of us 356 A LAYMAN LOOKS AT THE NUCLEAR NAVY followed a trifle gingerly and some, like myself, arrived on board in a position of supplication. The cameras and so on were brought aboard with a line from the sail fin. We climbed down about three decks into the control room and were hurried through into the forward mess. Apparently we had acquitted ourselves well and weren't quite such a laugh as some elderly business executives who'd boarded the submarine before she sailed from the States. Over coffee and buns we had time to square up a bit and look around. So this was the U.S.S. Scorpion, 12th nuclear submarine to join the American Navy. Commanded by Cdr. N. B. Bessac, U.S.N., she was first commissioned on 29th July, 1960. She is the first of the '588' class high speed attack type submarines to go to sea. She has a displacement of 3,000 tons, overall length 252 feet and a speed 'greater than 20 knots submerged'. Steam for her turbines is produced by heat from a S5W pressurised water-cooled reactor. Her diving depth is 'greater than 400 feet'. She was built by the Electric Boat Division of General Dynamics Corpn., Groton, Conn., and was launched on 19th December, 1959. Her cost to build was approximately E l 7 million. Her complement is eight officers and eighty-six ratings, though with personnel under training she usually carries more than 100 officers and men. So much for the Scorp'on's 'vital statistics'. While a coffe-making machine made ominous noises in the background we listened to a brief introductory talk from the Engineer Officer. Before arriving in the Clyde the Scorpion had been submerged almost exactly a week while on passage from Norfolk, Va. Since commissioning she'd taken part in 'Fallex' last autumn and 'Rum Tub', during the latter exercise it was suspected she'd 'sunk' Hermes. Apart from the 'Sherwood Forest' missile space in the Polaris submarines they are almost identical to Scorpion, we learnt. Indeed the original Scorpion was cut in two, lengthened and renamed George Washington-first of the Fleet Ballistic Missile submarines (F.B.M.s). T o build up our native egos Cdr. Bessac said that within 15 minutes of surfacing 100 miles west of 'Derry' he'd been picked up by a Shackleton. He spoilt the story though by admitting he'd given his exact position (thanks to SINS) to Admiralty. Nuclear submarines have vastly improved handling qualities compared with conventional boats and can 'bank' like an aircraft to an angle of 45 degrees. But they dive rather more slowly and even in emergency they take at least a minute, we gathered, to submerge from a 'hull under' condition. Air conditioning is fitted in all compartments and smoking is permitted when underway. 'Scrubber' units remove CO, and convert carbon monoxide into CO, for removal from the atmosphere. Taking one ton air conditioning to equal one ton of melted ice, the air conditioning plant produces 240 tons a day. For oxygen replenishment, bottles are stored in the ballast tanks. Nevertheless, there are a number of 'don'ts' to be observed. Refrigeration systems must be secure and leaks dealt with promptly. No painting is done underway and the ship (never boat if nuclear powered) has to be ventilated for at least a fortnight after a refit. The use of solvents, wax polish for the deck, tetrachloride for clothes or normal duplicator machine ink is forbidden. For the ship's office duplicator an alcohol-base ink is used-the only 'hard liquor' on board! There are three living decks and dining halls are separate from the messes. Each man has his own bunk complete with curtains and reading light. A typical menu for the 'enlisted men' might consist of grilled steak, saute mushrooms, potatoes A LAYMAN LOOKS AT THE NUCLEAR NAVY 357 O'Brien (we never did discover what these were), green beans, bread and butter, coffee (inevitably), cold soft drinks, strawberry shortcake and whipped cream. Meat is generally frozen but much of the food is 'rationdense': this is an advanced form of dehydration. Gash disposal is done by means of a compressed air ejection tube. Before leaving New London, Conn., at the start of a 6-8 week cruise30,OOO lb. of provisions were loaded. Bread, pastry and ice cream are made on bcard. All members of the ship's company are volunteers and each officer is personally interviewed by Admiral Rickover, 'father of the nuclear submarines', before appointment. The ideal rating must be 'stable, ambitious and intelligent'. He must be prepared to work one hell of a lot more than a 40-hour week, according to Cdr. Bessac. The lowest paid rating receives about £50 a month minimum. Some Chiefs make about El90 a month, plus a form of marriage allowance. Following the introductory talk from the Engineer Officer we were given a 'Cook's Tour'. On the lowest of the three decks is the principal accommodation area. Here also are heads and bathrooms and some storage compartments. In the messdecks there was an impression of soft greens and greys from bunk curtains and dust covers. Below again are the batteries for the electric motors. The ship has both diesel and electric drive in the event of reactor 'seam' or close down. The former are known as the 'belt and suspenders'. The electric motors are used occasionally for a silent run in to the target though apparently the noise factor aboard nuclear submarines caused by the cooling water pumps has to some extent been alleviated. Certainly there was no sign of the plastic cutlery once found in earlier ships such as Nautilus! As much as anything reliance is placed on high speed to avoid enemy counter-measures. On main deck level are the wardroom, officers' cabins (usually two-berth), galley, SINS compartment, torpedo stowage and the reactor compartment which in fact passes vertically through all three decks. The torpedoes carried vary in type according to the nature of the patrol but the short-type A/S torpedoes seemed to predominate. On the first deck is the control room, ship's offices and Sonar compartment. An interesting feature of the control room is the ballast state indication board; each external opening in the hull when secured is shown as a slot light and when open as a circular disc. Thus the Chief in charge of the board signifies that all openings are shut by singing out 'straight line shut!' There are two periscopes giving the normal high and medium magnification. The helmsman and planesman sit side by side on the port side forward. They use aircraft type wheels. There is no upperdeck conning position as in some conventional submarines. The periscopes are placed side by side also and the officer of the deck stands on a raised platform when using either of them. The chart table is so placed that he can scan it without leaving the platform. On the starboard side forward is the target indicator board while the radars are placed on the port side, again close to the periscope platform. The Sonar compartment is adjacent to the control room on the starboard side close to the wardroom access hatch. The W.T. office is also on this deck. Externally, the SINS (Ship's Inertial Navigation System) is uninspiring, consisting of a large grey dome. This system, in a nutshell, provides a constant indication of the ship's actual position on the earth's surface and takes currents and tides automatically into account. It was, of course, SINS which has largely contributed to the brilliant achievements of U.S. submarines in their trans-Arctic voyages. But what of the reactor itself? This, unfortunately, was in an area of maximum security and we saw nothing of it. In Scorpion as in most other nuclear submarines 358 A LAYMAN LOOKS AT THE NUCLEAR NAVY the reactor 'Scram' order has been given on occasions. This means that the control rods are inserted which shut down the reactor. But this in each case has not been due to a fault in the reactor itself but in the indicating and data recording instruments. The reactor is heavily shielded with lead, polyethylene and water tanks. Radiation only becomes a problem, according to Cdr. Bessac, when maintenance parties are working in the lower section of the reactor when the ship is alongside. The permitted 'dosage' per year is on the 5 roentgen standard. In fact the crew receive one third of one week's 'dosage' in a year at this standard. This is equivalent to a third of the amount of radiation received in one normal chest X-ray. But precautions are taken. Every member of the ship's company wears a 'dosimeter' which records on a hair-line gauge the amount of radiation received over a given period. Also 'film' clips, usually worn on the belt, go cloudy if the radiation level shows any marked rise inside the ship. Before coming alongside the ship's Hospital Corpsman (S.B.A.) makes at least 25 s ~ o checks t both inside and outside the shiv. A auick check with a counter shows whether samples such as scrapings from ladders or drops of water on the outside of the hull are contaminated. This form of checking was instituted after the Theodore Roosevelt contaminated a wide area round her berth as a result of a leak in the primary water system. The use of nuclear reactors at sea has brought about a completely new language. Apart from 'scram', a nuclear submarine's crew have to acquaint themselves with such things as 'crud'--radio-active corrosion products-'clean clothes', which needn't necessarily be brighter and whiter but must be free from radio-active particles which are located by 'frisking'. And if the 'frisking' finds contamination the clothes must be ~ u int 'hot bins'. Reactor time is measured in milli-seconds. Reactor shutdown time is based on the time of formation for each successive 'generation' of neutrons and therefore control of the reaction is inherently based on maintaining this rate at a predetermined equilibrium-with corresponding changes in this rate or level known as 'transients'. These are just a few minor examples of what even the most humble members of a nuclear submarine's crew have to know. No doubt someone in the Pentagon or Whitehall will coin a word like 'nuclear-submarinology' before long, but, grammatical horrors apart, nuclear submarines undoubtedly call for the finest officers and ratings available. Quite apart from pure technical knowledge patrols of perhaps 60 days constantly submerged demand a very high standard of discipline and what can be described, though hackneyed, as team spirit. The 'difficult' man, whether officer or rating, will not last for long. Before lunch in the functional but comfortable wardroom we watched the ship's company go to diving stations. Apart from the occasional hiss of the servo-motors there wasn't a sound. Only an occasional glance at the depth-gauge and a slight incline at the bows told us we were diving at all. When surfaced, even with the sail hatch above the control room open, there is none of the tremendous down-draught common to conventional boats. Once at a comfortable depth Cdr. Bessac showed us some of his command's capabilities. After some 'left rudder' orders we began to heel alarmingly. Then we realised the significance of the dog-lead clip strops some of the control room staff were holding. Luckily for us, being strop-less, we didn't need to do any underwater strap-hanging but when manoeuvring at speed they are essential. 'About the only thing I haven't done is an Immelmann turn', Cdr. Bessac told us. Half way through the evolution the rating standing by the telephone sang out: 'Cap'n, sir, Jonesie says "don't dump the tableyJ-he's got it all set up for lunch!' Highly informal maybe, but the crews of these submarines certainly seem to know their job. Over lunch we tried to give ourselves an insight into the wider tactical implications resulting from the employment of nuclear submarines in various forms of warfare. Cdr. Bessac, perhaps with just a trace of understandable bias, maintained that the balance in warfare at sea is in favour of nuclear submarines. He contended that the anti-submarine submarine, preferably nuclear, is the only real answer to the Polaris and other nuclear submarines. The Admiralty has been much maligned for its policy of making certainly the first two of our own nuclear submarines 'hunter-killer' boats. But if Russia's recent claims to have a fleet of nuclear submarines contain only a grain of truth the Admiralty's decision is undoubtedly the right one so long as our naval expenditure has to be very much cut to suit our economic cloth. Nevertheless, we shall need many more than two of these versatile vessels. The United States has forty already in commission. When we surfaced we had a chance to see something of the ship's external features at close quarters. The bows are curved and the bow wave was reminiscent of a spoon being pushed through treacle! These ships are clearly true submarines and when surfaced gave the impression of not being highly manoeuvrable. With no casing or external ballast tanks the hull is completely rounded except for a narrow catwalk fore and aft. Even the anchors fit neatly into recesses flush with the hull line. Fairleads and the for'ard capstan all slide up from tubes in the hull. About the only thing that has to be brought up from below after diving is the jackstaff. Moving up the Holy Loch we were escorted by an R.F.A. tug, a couple of launches and an L.C.A. from Proteus-but to the annoyance of the cameramen among us not one woolly-haired weirdie did we see. So after a trip in the duty motor boat from Proteus we offered ourselves once more to the tender mercies of British Railways at Gourock-bound for Glasgow and the delights of the night sleeper. D.W. The Commando Carrier's First Lornrnission D OUBTLESS some naval officers will think enough has already been written about H.M.S. Bulwark. The Commando Carrier idea seems to have appealed to the general public and parliament and we have had more than our share of publicity. The Navy-in many quarters-has not been so enthusiastic. However, this first commission has been full of interest and I shall try to go beyond the usual press reports. We commissioned at Portsmouth in January, 1960, did our trials and some work-up in the Channel, embarked the Commando and the helicopter squadron and left the United Kingdom in March. The 'Assault' work-up took place in the Mediterranean; we passed through the Canal in May and arrived Singapore in June. Since then, although based at Singapore, we have spent most of our time away and we have steamed many thousands of miles, including six crossings of the Indian Ocean. A good deal of our time has been spent in the Western half of the Indian Ocean-the East African coast, Aden and the Gulf, whilst at the other end we have not been allowed 'beyond' Hong Kong. Too valuable a ship! It has been sad not to visit Australia or Japan. Twice we 'stood by' for operations and finally we justified our existence and all our training by putting the first unit into Kuwait, a properly equipped and supported unit which for some days was the envy of the Army units as they arrived piecemeal and without much of their equipment, supplies or vehicles. ASHOREAND AFLOAT This brief historical survey of the commission immediately highlights one of the most debatable points about the Commando Carrier. For how long should the Commando be embarked ? The 'Royals' argue that they must spend the majority of their time training ashore to be militarily efficient. Without adequate periods for military training, the Commando, like a pilot deprived of flying practice, quickly loses his skill; the opposite view is that the Marines only justify themselves by being mobile sea soldiers. The Commandos saw themselves as one third at sea, and otherwise training at their Barracks at Singapore. In the ship, without a refit, we achieved about two-thirds of our time away. In the event, the Commando actually came for half their time and the balance was made up with one trip with a Gurkha battalion embarked-much enjoyed on both sides-and another cruise in which we had one troop of the Commando only. In the future it is hoped, on the Marine side, to run two Commandos, each doing one third of its time in the carrier. This is probably the best solution but it will be a pity to weaken the special association that has been built up between '42' and Bulwark. However arranged, it is clear that, whenever the ship leaves base she should be complete with helicopters, troops and supplies. COMMANDOS ON BOARD How have the Commandos fitted in on board? Considering everything I think we can say very well. But there are several things to take into account. First, the modern Marine is basically a land animal: he is not used to the crowded conditions of ship life. Few have been in ship's detachments. Consequently they have taken time to get used to the ship. Secondly with about 600, it has been difficult to employ them all usefully during our many long passages. The use of the flight deck has been an important factor: this conflicts with flying and other activities and I have heard 'The Battle of the Flight Deck' referred to as the Commandos' major battle at sea. Actually in the really hot weather we have worked tropical routine and the afternoon sees the flight deck a whirl of games and P.T. and rifle ranges. Apart from their keep-fit and military activities the Commandos have assisted to keep the ship cleaned and maintained. They have been attached to ship's departments but best results have naturally been obtained when they can be given their own 'parts of ship'. However, with the best will in the world I do not think we can say the Commandos have been enthusiastic over this ship husbandry business. After the sea passages there have nearly always been exercises and if the ship has spent any considerable time at a port-as at Mombasa in August, 1960-arrangements have been made to get the Commando ashore into a camp or bivouac area where they can train and live in their own element. It is on return from such jaunts that the ship amenities such as baths, good meals, cinema and so on are appreciated. Another factor which has affected service in the ship has been the Admiralty decision to make the Commando an 'accompanied' draft to Singapore whilst the ship's company remained 'foreign service'. The families have numbered about 120 and it would have been strange had their presence passed unnoticed by the ship's company. Incidentally the helicopter squadron personnel have been on a third type of service and this has not helped to make the ship-squadron-commando into a united whole, but I think in actual fact there has been less jealousy than might be expected and each element has been tolerant of the other. The system of discipline on board may be mentioned as of interest. Broadly the Commandos have remained under disciplinary control of their Colonel, using the Army Act, except for 'Ship Offences' when they have come under the NavaI Discipline Act and ultimately under the Captain of the ship. This is roughly the system that applies to any embarked troops. There has been much arguing about this, the defining of ship offences, the confusion to the man who 'doesn't know where he stands', the requirement for the Colonel to be seen to command his own unit, the ultimate need for the Captain of the ship to be responsible for discipline on board and so on. In actual fact a perfectly reasonable modus &vendi was reached, though the matter is by no means dead or likely to remain so. In sport, whilst away from Singapore we have presented a united front to our enemies. Early on, the combined teams usually contained a majority of Commandos, they having been longer in commission. Latterly, as the Commando has changed, the situation has been reversed. In shore-going the tiger has lain down with the lamb but perhaps not so much as one hoped. Whether Malta and Aden were broken up more by ship or Commando has always remained a moot point. The reader, in hearing about the more domestic matters, may so far be rather more aware of the differences and difficulties than of the undoubted overall success of the new venture. The ship has been proud to be associated with '42' and I hope the reverse is true. But of course it is in an operational role that the co-operation is most important. Let us now look at the ship as dawn breaks off one of our out-posts of empire. The helicopters are emerging from the hangar up both lifts; the rotors are spread and the aircraft pushed away to their 'spots'. There are nine helicopter spots down the flight deck rather to port of the centre line, but when all the Commando transport is being carried some of the after spots may be covered with vehicles. On the starboard side a broad red line delineates a safety area clear of whirling rotors. This safety area is used for mustering the 'sticks' of marines, the dumping of stores, and during an initial fly off, the parking of helicopters that cannot be spotted. The ship was converted to carry twenty-four helicopters but we have always been well under this figure. At our best we have had sixteen 'runners' and apart from the nine spotted aircraft there is just room for seven standing by behind the red line, so that we can have all our runners on deck initially. On an order from 'Flyco', the forward lift now comes up with a load of Commandos, who having prepared on their messdecks are routed through the hangar 362 THE COMMANDO CARRIER'S FIRST COMMISSION where they divide into their pre-planned 'sticks' and receive their final briefing. The sticks are led by Seaman Flight Deck Guides with numbered caps and surcoats, and as the lift reaches the top, the guides lead their sticks away to the marshalling points opposite each aircraft. Now Flyco orders 'Five-four-three-two-one-start up' and we hope that sixteen Leonides engines leap into life. Starting, as a matter of fact, has been one of our troubles and plenty of time must be allowed. Then, one by one, rotors are engaged in the spotted aircraft. While the engines warm up, the Commando sticks emplane, usually four men to each aircraft together with their weapons, ammunition and essential equipment. The director at each aircraft spot gives the thumbs up sign as soon as his helicopter is ready, and when all are reported and the correct time is reached, the green light shows, the chockmen double away from their positions at the aircraft wheels, and the helicopters rise in turn from forward to aft at about ten second intervals. As soon as the first flight is away, the remainder on deck are pushed forward, spotted, rotors engaged and loaded. They can be got away within ten minutes to join with the first flight if required, and thus an initial landing can be up to about sixty men. Darkness is no serious obstacle, although operations are slower. If the first landing is successful it is usual for the helicopters then to work 'in stream' to avoid all delays. As individual aircraft return they are directed to a spot where they alight, pick up a new load, and probably refuel, to take off again within seconds. As the exercise or operation proceeds, loads become more varied: supplies of food, water, ammunition, etc., are interspersed with the continuing sticks of men. Supplies may be loaded inside or may be slung externally under the helicopter. Our light Citroen trucks and the anti-tank guns are amongst the loads which must be carried externally. With a full quota of helicopters working perhaps over a shortish range the flight deck presents a picture of tremendous animation as aircraft alight and take off and loads are rushed out, or hooked on. As a spectacle I found the sight enthralling. Needless to say, a considerable organisation is required to ensure everything runs smoothly. This has largely been worked out on board in the early part of the commission and we like to think that a reasonable system has been evolved. For sometime we had the assistance of a Work Study Team, and we have been well supplied with mechanical aids and new types of equipment. Some of our methods will need modifying when the bigger Wessex helicopters come into service: they will carry about three times the loads of the Whirlwinds. This is not the place to enumerate the vast number of 'lessons learned' in the first commission, but a few general points may be touched on. The Commando Carrier should not be regarded merely as a very expensive and sophisticated transport. Having landed the Commando, there is a vital role to play in keeping it supplied with everything it wants. Furthermore the helicopters, in what we have called their 'tactical role' ashore, confer unique mobility on the Commando. Because of their vulnerability the use of the helicopters in the tactical role has to be carefully planned and controlled. The control of helicopters when operating ashore has been the subject of long and complicated arguments. We have established the need for a naval aviator to 'advise' the military commander: much depends on his communications. If the operations move inland, or the ship has to leave the area for some reason, we have practised the establishment of an advanced helicopter base, known as an 'Oasis' which reminds us that many of the exercises have been in desert areas but we have also however had our share of jungle and mountain areas. We have done a lot of night flying and several night exercises : the advantage of night operations can be clearly imagined for certain circumstances. This has added a club to our bag. Reconnaissance and surveillance of the battle area, are further tactical roles in which we have done some experimenting: much remains to be done and there is a need for a light reconnaissance helicopter in the future. The armed helicopter is another experiment further back in development but we can see interesting and exciting uses both for the gun armed helicopter and the anti-tank guided missile-armed helicopter. VEHICLES Vehicles were mentioned earlier: originally it was envisaged that the Commando would use the light Citroen trucks and leave their larger vehicles behind. From the start they have been reluctant to go anywhere without these vehicles, about sixty of them. Although the helicopters give mobility to a portion of the Commando they do not and cannot take the place of these vehicles in nearly every kind of campaign envisaged. Consequently we have come to accept these vehicles, we have learnt to juggle them between flight deck and hangar, and we have always managed to get them ashore somehow. The Landrovers go in our four landing craft (L.C.A.3) but for the larger ones we have to go alongside or we need rafts or lighters. A special inflatable raft is in course of development and will be invaluable if and when it works. It may be mentioned here that the L.C.A.'s designed originally for this one purpose have proved absolutely invaluable for troop and store carrying to supplement the helicopters, and for libertymen and many other peaceable purposes. Evacuation of casualties by helicopter which proved so successful at Port Said is allowed for but has mainly been limited to our heat exhaustion cases at Kuwait, and practice. It is a quality of the Commando Carrier which makes us popular with the Commando as of course it has a good effect on morale. A frequent and justified criticism of the ship is the comparatively large number of sailors it takes to launch and support one Commando of 600 men. The Americans do very much better than we do here, but their Marines do not usually live on board for very long. From the habitability point of view the ship is very old fashioned and this 'eats up' men on unproductive cleaning and maintenance. Reductions in complement are unlikely to be achieved unless money is authorised to improve habitability. Like most conversions the ship is not altogether suitable for the job. On the other side we have found it practicable to embark a second Commando and still fly, but this can only be considered an emergency measure for a short time. The original concept allowed for the ship having a secondary role as an A/S Carrier. The story is too long and complicated to go into here and it is sufficient to say that the secondary role with our own squadron is very tenuous, but we have exercised with other A/S squadrons embarked. This is a pity when we all need to be as versatile as we can. 364 SUBMARINE DEFENSE The much publicised comprehensive air-conditioning has proved a tremendous boon particularly during the operations off Kuwait. It does not produce the ice cold atmosphere usually associated with air-conditioned compartments, but it does make the ship a reasonable place to live in, and this item has probably been of more moment to the ship's company than anything else. Off Kuwait in the latter stages we gave 200 soldiers daily, twenty-four hours 'Rest and Recreation in Bulwark's Butlins'. Before finishing it is perhaps right to return to the helicopters and pilots who formed the front line. A great deal of flying was done, over 9,000 landings on deck including more than one thousand at night. Most of the time it has been necessary to fly aircraft near the limits of load and a high standard of flying has been maintained in a great variety of climates and terrain. Confidence has been created between the Marines and pilots by this high standard and by living and training together both at sea and ashore. We had our quota of accidents, some of them spectacular, but we had the good fortune to have no casualties. And so one could go on: there has been never-ending incident and interest. One could mention that famous body of men known as The Bulwark Light Horse, a special naval landing party trained to land and assist the Commando ashore when they could be spared. In the future no doubt Commando Carrier service will become as common as cruiser service. But the first commission of our first Commando Carrier is something to record and remember. R.D.F. Submarine Defense Reprinted by permission from Proceedings; Copyright 1961 by United States Naval Institute, and by perrnissio~zof the author, Captain Thomas D. McGrath, U.S. Navy (Ret.). A DISCUSSION of submarine defense should start with some consideration of the necessity for its existence. Available facts show that the Soviets have concentrated on submarine construction and, presumably, intend to use their submarines. They have shifted their emphasis from defensive to long-range submarines, and their development efforts are now concentrating on submarine-to-surface missiles, i.e. anti-shipping weapons. Significantly, in disarmament proposals, the submarine has not been mentioned. Soviet plans include the employment of the submarine in its conventional role, but this does not necessarily preclude an eventual mass destruction capability. This conclusion is supported by repeated Soviet statements that victory will come through the collapse of the allegedly precarious financial structure of the capitalistic world. Submarine warfare is an effective method of producing stresses in an economy. Recent events indicate that weapons of mass destruction may ultimately be restricted, and Russia's willingness to discuss such proposals seems to support the thesis that they expect to accomplish their aims by other means. The strong protests of the non-nuclear powers against France's SUBMARINE DEFENSE 365 atomic tests indicate that a large sector of world opinion advocates complete nuclear disarmament. Such opinion must be taken into account by major powers. Submarines offer wide possibilities for limited and cold war and could be a prime instrument in the future. Soviet insistence that the conflict is in the commercial world strengthens this conviction, because submarine warfare affords a means of retrieving a commercial defeat. Prudence then dictates that the United States have an effective submarine defense. Many presentations on anti-submarine warfare remind one of the story of the blind men examining an elephant. The first felt his leg and said 'Like a tree'; the second touched his side and said' No, like a wall'; another found his trunk to be 'A python'; the fourth, an old sailor, siezed his tail and tried to tie a knot in it; aggravated, the elephant sprayed the fifth, who gasped 'A waterfall'; and the sixth, in the excitement, fell into the zoo's moat. So, anti-submarine warfare is described as submarines, destroyers, aircraft, blimps, helicopters, warning nets--or a bottomless pit for scarce money. It may be each of these, but more importantly it is the whole elephant. Until the beast is presented as an entity, the Navy will not get full public support, Congressional support or even whole-hearted Navy support. As long as the possibility exists that enemy submarines could prevent movement of our supplies and forces through the seas, or could launch destruction from under the seas, we must be prepared to stop them doing so. This is the objective of submarine defense. Its tasks are to ensure movements of forces and supplies and to prevent hostile submarines from being stationed where missile attacks could be launched against targets important to us. The first task requires prevention of enemy submarines from reaching the proximity of naval forces or merchant shipping. The second requires effective surveillance of large ocean areas to great depths and preventing access thereto. The former can be accomplished by establishing defence zones or by denying enemy submarines access to shipping lanes. The former would tend to obviate the latter. Thus, the three main categories of anti-submarine warfare operations are defense of shipping, defense of naval forces and area defense. The last category overlaps the others in amphibious operations and near terminals and bases. To effect these operations five elements exist (1) surface, (2) air, (3) mines, (4) submarine and (5) fixed installations. Surface forces have been used to provide defense zones around naval and merchant ship formations, air to furnish area surveillance, and mines for protection of limited areas. Submarines and shore installations are new elements. The submarine now has a definite place in submarine defense particularly in denying enemy access to ocean areas. Fixed installations offer possibilities for area detection. Mine warfare is being reorientated against submarine targets. A sixth element, not always considered, is intelligence. It includes operational intelligence of the enemy and knowledge of the environment. Operational intelligence presumably will be available from our national intelligence agencies; intelligence on the environment will come from the recently augmented programme in oceanography. The major post-war development is the certainty that these 364 SUBMARINE DEFENSE The much publicised comprehensive air-conditioning has proved a tremendous boon particularly during the operations off Kuwait. It does not produce the ice cold atmosphere usually associated with air-conditioned compartments, but it does make the ship a reasonable place to live in, and this item has probably been of more moment to the ship's company than anything else. Off Kuwait in the latter stages we gave 200 soldiers daily, twenty-four hours 'Rest and Recreation in Bulwark's Butlins'. Before finishing it is perhaps right to return to the helicopters and pilots who formed the front line. A great deal of flying was done, over 9,000 landings on deck including more than one thousand at night. Most of the time it has been necessary to fly aircraft near the limits of load and a high standard of flying has been maintained in a great variety of climates and terrain. Confidence has been created between the Marines and pilots by this high standard and by living and training together both at sea and ashore. We had our quota of accidents, some of them spectacular, but we had the good fortune to have no casualties. And so one could go on: there has been never-ending incident and interest. One could mention that famous body of men known as The Bulwark Light Horse, a special naval landing party trained to land and assist the Commando ashore when they could be spared. In the future no doubt Commando Carrier service will become as common as cruiser service. But the first commission of our first Commando Carrier is something to record and remember. R.D.F. Submarine Defense Reprinted by permission from Proceedings; Copyright 1961 by United States Naval Institute, and by permission of the author, Captain Thomas D. McGrath, U.S. Navy (Ret.). A DISCUSSION of submarine defense should start with some consideration of the necessity for its existence. Available facts show that the Soviets have concentrated on submarine construction and, presumably, intend to use their submarines. They have shifted their emphasis from defensive to long-range submarines, and their development efforts are now concentrating on submarine-to-surface missiles, i.e. anti-shipping weapons. Significantly, in disarmament proposals, the submarine has not been mentioned. Soviet plans include the employment of the submarine in its conventional role, but this does not necessarily preclude an eventual mass destruction capability. This conclusion is supported by repeated Soviet statements that victory will come through the collapse of the allegedly precarious financial structure of the capitalistic world. Submarine warfare is an effective method of producing stresses in an economy. Recent events indicate that weapons of mass destruction may ultimately be restricted, and Russia's willingness to discuss such proposals seems to support the thesis that they expect to accomplish their aims by other means. The strong protests of the non-nuclear powers against France's SUBMARINE DEFENSE 365 atomic tests indicate that a large sector of world opinion advocates complete nuclear disarmament. Such opinion must be taken into account by major powers. Submarines offer wide possibilities for limited and cold war and could be a prime instrument in the future. Soviet insistence that the conflict is in the commerciaI world strengthens this conviction, because submarine warfare affords a means of retrieving a commercial defeat. Prudence then dictates that the United States have an effective submarine defense. Many presentations on anti-submarine warfare remind one of the story of the blind men examining an elephant. The first felt his leg and said 'Like a tree'; the second touched his side and said' No, like a wall'; another found his trunk to be 'A python'; the fourth, an old sailor, siezed his tail and tried to tie a knot in it; aggravated, the elephant sprayed the fifth, who gasped 'A waterfall'; and the sixth, in the excitement, fell into the zoo's moat. So, anti-submarine warfare is described as submarines, destroyers, aircraft, blimps, helicopters, warning nets-or a bottomless pit for scarce money. It may be each of these, but more importantly it is the whole elephant. Until the beast is presented as an entity, the Navy will not get full public support, Congressional support or even whole-hearted Navy support. As long as the possibility exists that enemy submarines could prevent movement of our supplies and forces through the seas, or could launch destruction from under the seas, we must be prepared to stop them doing so. This is the objective of submarine defense. Its tasks are to ensure movements of forces and supplies and to prevent hostile submarines from being stationed where missile attacks could be launched against targets important to us. The first task requires prevention of enemy submarines from reaching the proximity of naval forces or merchant shipping. The second requires effective surveillance of large ocean areas to great depths and preventing access thereto. The former can be accomplished by establishing defence zones or by denying enemy submarines access to shipping lanes. The former would tend to obviate the latter. Thus, the three main categories of anti-submarine warfare operations are defense of shipping, defense of naval forces and area defense. The last category overlaps the others in amphibious operations and near terminals and bases. To effect these operations five elements exist (1) surface, (2) air, (3) mines, (4) submarine and (5) fixed installations. Surface forces have been used to provide defense zones around naval and merchant ship formations, air to furnish area surveillance, and mines for protection of limited areas. Submarines and shore installations are new elements. The submarine now has a definite place in submarine defense particularly in denying enemy access to ocean areas. Fixed installations offer possibilities for area detection. Mine warfare is being reorientated against submarine targets. A sixth element, not always considered, is intelligence. It includes operational intelligence of the enemy and knowledge of the environment. Operational intelligence presumably will be available from our national intelligence agencies; intelligence on the environment will come from the recently augmented programme in oceanography. The major post-war development is the certainty that these 366 SUBMARINE DEFENSE elements should not be considered singly but in combination and as being mutually supporting. Thinking on submarine defense has not always been clear-cut. Proponents of single elements tend to ensure predominance of that element without determining if it is justified, and the element with the most enthusiastic and vociferous proponents has assumed the greatest importance. Consequently air, surface, and submarine elements overshadow the mine, fixed installations and intelligence. These have sought more and more of what they have. Each seems to strive for elimination of the necessity for the others. This, despite post-war experience demonstrating that all elements are necessarily mutually supporting. Thus, the most productive areas are not necessarily the most stressed. This is stated to emphasize the necessity for an over-all concept of submarine defense, one which would provide positions of relative importance to A.S.W. elements based on projected potentialities. Then the enthusiasm and energy of all elements can be channelled to produce cumulative progress towards a common objective. An over-all concept would have other advantages. I t would allow presentation to the public of a unified approach. Now the problem is presented piecemeal and sometimes contradictorily. While one element is announcing progress another is delineating its problems. The result can only be confusion in the public mind. A unified concept can serve as a guide to budgeting and, if public support is gained, will command Congressional support. Industry's main criticism of the Navy's anti-submarine effort is that it cannot determine where any one company or industry can apply its skills and know-how. Lacking guidance, industry picks its own areas. The result, coupled with the salesmanship for which American industry is famous, is considerable expenditure of funds and efforts in marginal areas. An overall concept will guide industry where available talents and facilities will yield greatest dividends. Therefore, a broad concept of over-all submarine defense is needed for co-ordination of the Navy's efforts, for a logical presentation to the public, for industry's guidance, and as a basis for a programme to the Congress. That which follows will be a discussion of the principles and possible content for an over-all concept of anti-submarine warfare. Russia possesses the preponderance of submarines in the world, divided between her various fleets. Some are also in Albania and others are on loan to Egypt. Other countries which may willingly or unwillingly become Communist can furnish bases. Communist target areas can be assumed, but there is no certainty that such assumptions coincide with Soviet intentions. Attack can come from almost any direction against many locations. Logically then, the first principle of the plan must be that it is not rigidly orientated toward any geographical area. It is often stated that the submarine can be destroyed while building, at bases, in transit and on station. Destruction of the enemy's building and base complex, however, requires attacks on enemy territority, which is possible only in event of all-out hostilities. In transit or on station it may not be possible to attack the submarines until commission of an overt act. The Communists are adept at utilising hostilities short of general war and will do so whenever i t is to their advantage. Therefore the SUBMARINE DEFENSE 367 second principle of the plan must be that, while providing for all-out hostilities, its effectiveness is not dependent on general war. Anti-submarine warfare does not involve clashes between large opposing forces, with the decision a result of a single battle. It is a war of attrition, of single actions, of an exchange of losses. This exchange must result in our ending up with some effective units. Initially, having fewer units of some elements-especially submarines-than the opponent, our capabilities need to be sufficiently greater than theirs, so that the exchange will be in our favour. Therefore, the third principle of the plan must be that it does not depend for effectiveness on engagement by the same types, unless at an assured favourable exchange rate. The submarine has increased its effectiveness by several orders of magnitude since World War 11. Its speed has increased, it operates at increasingly greater depths, its submerged endurance is becoming unlimited, and it will become even more silent. The next developments will probably be in weaponry. The missile can gradually be expected to replace the torpedo. As detection ranges increase, weapons will be developed to attack other submarines and surface craft at these ranges. Therefore the fourth principle of the plan must be that it provide for continuously increasing capabilities in the opponent. No element can accomplish the total objective of submarine defense. Some elements support the others, but all have limitations. Some limitations of one element can be compensated for by a capability of another. Elements used in combination will increase the overall capability more than the sum of the capabilities of the individual elements. Therefore, the plan's fifth principle must be that it capitalise on the capabilities of all elements in combination. Conceivably the submarine defense problem can be solved by sufficient forces. Numbers would be astronomical and current fiscal policies make this an impractical solution. Shipbuilding, aircraft procurement, and weapon programmes indicate that there will not be enough of anything. Therefore any measures taken in peacetime which will decrease force requirements in war will contribute greatly to success when hostilities occur. Therefore, the sixth principle of the plan must be that it concentrate on current measures which will reduce future force requirements. The world is constantly changing; what was new yesterday is obsolescent today. The seventh principle of the plan is self-evident; it must be flexible enough to allow for technological breakthroughs, scientific progress, and changes in world conditions. To this point the need for an over-all plan for submarine defense has been demonstrated, the mission has been stated, broad principles delineating its content laid down, and the supporting elements listed. Before considering these elements in more detail an additional requirement should be stated. Large area coverage will accomplish all other tasks. Therefore, because reduction in tasks results in reduction of forces required, the plan should provide for expanding area coverage. But it must be remembered that the plan should not be orientated geographically. Consequently, the system giving area coverage (if such coverage is less than worldwide) must be flexible and hence at least partially mobile. Since effective area coverage appears fairly remote, the requirement can be borne in mind while considering the elements : air, surface, sub-surface, fixed installations, mines and intelligence. These are 368 SUBMARINE DEFENSE arranged approximately in the order of the vociferousness of their proponents but will be discussed in the reverse order in the hope that the true order of importance will result. Intelligence, as used herein, will include information of possible opponents and on the environments which can affect operations. These can be referred to as operational intelligence and environmental intelligence. In submarine defense these must have maximum stress. Good operational intelligence can ensure sound planning, greatly reduce force requirements, and increase tactical effectiveness. Environmental intelligence is just as important. The ocean presently co-operates with the target. Full knowledge of the science of oceanography can bring the environment to our side, resulting in an increase in effectiveness of equipment and tactics, a decrease in enemy capabilities, and the development of methods of capitalising on the environment. Therefore, improved intelligence will result in reduced force requirements and, as it supports all other elements, rates a top priority. Gathering intelligence is important, but of equal importance is its translation into usable form. A programme is needed to translate the results of oceanographic research into tactical and operating instructions. Approaching this problem on a statistical basis is invalid, because the opponent has the same sources available and will be encountered not under average conditions, but under the conditions most advantageous to him. Therefore the on-the-scene commander must have detailed operating instructions based on measurement of conditions in the area, at the time of encounter. All capabilities must be used to maximum advantage then. Temperature, wind, oxygen content, depth, bottom character, and animal life are the chief variables. There may be others. Variations in sound velocity should be measured rather than temperature, because more of the variables would be encompassed. These variations must eventually be measured horizontally as well as vertically. Progress in predicting water conditions is encouraging, but little guidance is available to the man at sea on the use of such information. A concurrent effort is needed to make oceanographic data useful on the spot. Mine Warfare has in the past been directed against surface targets. By its nature it has always been of great psychological advantage and small efforts have required considerably greater counter-efforts. Mines are being increasingly oriented against submarine targets. They are still considered to be for use in restricted waters however, and targets must come within a few yards of them. Mines need to be recognized as a major element in anti-submarine warfare, employment extended to deep water, and have their effective area per unit increased. Mines can be used to deny access to great areas; they are difficult to counter, cost little to maintain until required, and can be put into place quickly. A most attractive feature is that detection and attack are combined in a single package. Effective employment will reduce force requirements. For example, effective mine barriers from Florida to Cuba and across the Yucatan Channel from Cuba to Mexico would remove all requirements for harbour defence, inshore patrol, convoy escort, shipping control and mine defence for the entire Gulf of Mexico. More extended systems, covering all passages into the Caribbean, would free the Caribbean and the Gulf of Mexico from the previously listed requirements. Systems covering the Gulf of St. Lawrence and possibly the entire coasts of the United States are not impossible. Such mine defense systems could permit concentration of mobile forces in the open oceans, with consequent increase in the probability of success. The advantages inherent in mine SUBMARINE DEFENSE 369 warfare justify as great an importance for this element as is accorded any of the other elements. Fixed Installations are increasingly advocated as the problem of area defense emerges. The proponents are scientific and technical men who exercise considerable influence on their military counterparts. Systems which detect submarines over wide areas are attractive although they can only be 'burglar alarms'. Mobile forces are required to localise and attack detected targets since the systems are not capable of pinpointing a target. Such systems are expensive and are oriented geographically. In an over-all A.S.W. concept, dependence on and effort expended for such systems should be limited to those with proven capabilities. No general installation should be made until a model installation has been proved and its maximum capability determined. In addition, proposals for fixed installations should be carefully weighed against a counterpart mobile system. For fixed installations will always lack the flexibility that should be inherent in naval systems. The Submarine has become increasingly attractive as an anti-submarine weapon system. It operates in its target's environment and any advantage gained therefrom by the target is shared by the attacker. But the submarine is a weapon of ambush and therefore always in danger of being ambushed. In such combat the advantage will always be with the stealthier, i.e. the quieter, submarine. In a war of attrition losses must be expected, and since the Soviets possess three or four submarines to our one, such a war must not end with our having no submarines. The submarine has potential as a warning system. In certain circumstances and areas it is effective. Coupled with aircraft its usefulness has increased. It has an important place in submarine defence for it forces the enemy to diversify his defences, complicates his weapon loading and forces restrictions on his operations. Therefore its place in the over-all concept should be to provide warning and protection of areas where a favourable exchange rate can be assured by aircraft support or favourable operating conditions. As operating depths of submarines increase, the submarine might become the only weapon which can attack, therefore continued stress must be placed on increasing its capabilities in submarine defense. The anti-submarine needs much greater detection capabilities, the capability of detecting quiet submarines, positive classification means, weapons to attack at maximum ranges and depths, and communications to enable it to co-ordinate with other submarines, aircraft and surface ships. Surface Ships have been the workhorses of submarine defense. Employment was in screening shipping formations and landing areas. Types ranged from subchasers to small aircraft carriers. The most numerous types used in the deep ocean areas were destroyers. Later in World War I1 the escort carrier, as the hub of the hunterkiller force employing aircraft and destroyers for area search, became an integral part of anti-submarine warfare. Development of the submarine opponent has placed the surface element of anti-submarine warfare at a considerable disadvantage. Since submarine speeds are approaching and may soon surpass destroyer speeds, the latter's ability even to engage a detected but reluctant opponent will probably become marginal. The speed problem has two solutions-increase the speed of the surface ships themselves or put the speed into the weapon. The first solution requires partially airborne vehicles such as hydrofoils or air cushion types. The alternative is realised by using aircraft (fixed-wing or helicopters) as extensions of surface ships systems. New systems use rocket-propelled missiles and pilotless 37O SUBMARINE DEFENSE helicopters. Drone aircraft could be used. Eventually such extension of attack capability by airborne vehicles will broaden to include detection, classification and gathering of environmental data. A second disadvantage of the destroyer arises from the differing requirements of its tasks. For protection of naval forces the destroyer must have speed, endurance and seakeeping qualities to keep up with them. These forces will operate in areas where control of the air may be in dispute and air defence must be provided. This results in ships of almost cruiser size, with consequent reduction in numbers. For protection of logistical shipping large numbers of smaller ships with little air defence capability are needed. Utilization of the multi-purpose ships in this latter task would waste a large proportion of their capabilities. The above considerations outline requirements for three categories of surface ships : high-speed, semi-airborne ships; slower, small ships with high-speed attack means; and large, all-purpose ships. There can never be enough destroyer types and every utilization of intelligence, mines and aircraft must be exploited to cope with the anti-submarine problem. The remaining vehicle, the support carrier, is needed until area coverage is greatly extended. It provides a means of concentrating all mobile anti-submarine warfare elements in areas of maximum opportunity. Until integral airborne weapon systems are a part of surface ship armament the carrier will be required as a base to supply the high speed extension of the surface ship's means of attack. It also provides the best platform for direction and control of combined anti-submarine warfare operations. The use of submarines as an extension of surface ships' capabilities needs to be developed, for a combination of surface, sub-surface and air may prove the most effective weapon system. This requires development of underwater communications comparable to surface communications. In spite of its limitations the surface ship will remain the major element of submarine defence, particularly for directing and controlling. Its capabilities must be extended to the maximum however, by close integration with air and sub-surface vehicles. The Aeroplane became an effective element of anti-submarine warfare during World War 11, but it was effective only when submarines were exposed on the surface. This advantage decreases as the opponent becomes a true submarine. Hunter-killer groups were effective but much of this effectiveness derived from excellent intelligence. Comparable intelligence cannot be depended on in the future. The aircraft capability of covering large distances in short periods makes it an attractive vehicle. But this capability adds little to submarine defence unless it is coupled with a means of detection of submerged quiet targets. Realization of such a capability appears remote at present, although much effort is being expended to develop it. If our concept is to be realistic the aeroplane should be given a support role in anti-submarine warfare: to gather intelligence, lay mines, support fixed installations and extend the capabilities of surface ships and submarines. The airborne anti-submarine vehicles are patrol craft, carrier-based aircraft, helicopters and blimps. Blimps, if continued in operation, will be most useful in support of fixed installations, especially on the west coast where weather is generally favourable. Helicopters appear most useful in support of surface ships to extend detection, classification and attack capability. Fixed-wing aircraft can perform the same functions and are needed to deny the surface to the opponent. Therefore the aircraft should be integrated into the plan as an important support element. SUBMARINE DEFENSE 37I From the analysis possible here the outline of the plan for submarine defense begins to emerge. Surface ships should be the major element. Submarines should augment surface capabilities as developments allow, while developing their own capabilities as forward warning posts and weapons of opportunity. Aircraft should be developed to the maximum as support for all other elements. Finally emphasis on intelligence and mine warfare should be increased because they offer the greatest possibilities for reducing the requirements on the other elements. Fixed installations should continue to be developed but major networks should be installed only on a basis of proven capabilities and when no mobile alternative is available. CAPABILITIES PROVIDING EFFECTIVENESS While the operating elements of submarine defence have been discussed, the capabilitiesproviding their effectiveness have only been referred to. These capabilities are detection, identification, localisation (for vehicles incapable of holding continuous contact) and attack. An additional capability, not directly applicable, but necessary whenever multiple units are involved, is control. This includes the necessary communications, command centers and means for correlating and analysing information in order to bring available elements to bear most effectively. All capabilities are equally important but emphasis needs to be varied to stress the weakest. At present, underwater detection is almost wholly dependent on sound, and is obtained actively by putting sound into the water and detecting the reflected echo, or passively by detecting the sound of the target. Passive systems depend on target co-operation and this co-operation, already poor, will decrease. Therefore passive systems will become gradually less effective. Such systems must be recognised as short term and interim measures and expenditures must be carefully weighed to insure that reasonable dividends can be realised before the systems become ineffective. Active detection needs to be emphasised, especially aspects that can cut weight and cost. Most effort to date has been expended on getting acoustic power into the water and the limit will soon be reached. Efforts need to be redirected to improving receivers, echo recognition, reducing noise and capitalising on water phenomena. Means of getting sound energy into the water by a method other than conversion of electrical energy should be stressed. Finally, quieting of all waterborne vehicles is necessary. Yet sound put into the water either for detection or unwillingly by the target has many limitations. Research needs to be concentrated in utilization of the sound always present in the oceans and in searching for other phenomena to replace or augment sound. Propulsion systems using direct conversion of energy should be developed at high priority because such plants should be extremely quiet, having no moving parts. They are needed in both surface ships and submarines. The possibility exists that the Communists may bypass our nuclear boiler/turbine drive and concentrate on developing such a submarine propulsion system. They can afford to take time for this since we conceded them the initiative. Weapons are getting so expensive and the opponent so elusive that each attack made must be on an enemy submarine. Classification and identification are becoming as important as detection but are not being given equal emphasis, possibly because there are so few solutions in sight. The solution will be found only by fullest investigation of all characteristics of the submarine to determine which can be used to differentiate it from other noises when detected actively or passively. The interim 372 S U B W R I N E DEFENSE solution appears to be to view targets from as many different aspects and by as many different means as possible. Localisation is a problem limited to vehicles whose detection means can only make intermittent contact. It can be solved by giving means of holding continuous contact. The more practical solution appears to be to use such vehicles in support of other vehicles that can maintain contact once it is gained. Attack is the culmination of the anti-submarine duel. Its objective is the delivery of an explosive charge, nuclear or conventional, by direct means or by torpedo, sufficiently close to the target to insure its destruction. It is dependent for its effectiveness on the detection system's ability to gain and maintain contact. If the detection system is passive then its effectiveness is dependent on the attacker being more quiet than the target. Since this condition cannot always be met and effectiveness of an expensive weapon cannot depend on fortuirous chance, the value of any attack system needs to be weighed carefully and reasonable determination made of the time-span of effectiveness of such systems to insure our getting full value for our money. In active systems designed for use at extended ranges the speed of sound in water must be considered along with the fact that the target will be alerted when the sound reaches it. Thus at thirty-five miles, the target will hear the sound minutes before the echo can reach the attacker. Couple this lag with the times required from receipt of last usable information in a system, to arrival of a weapon at the target and it will be seen that almost all ballistic-type systems are likely to become ineffective at long range. Long range anti-submarine systems must have the capability to guide the missile up to the moment of impact. Since ability to use nuclear warheads is problematical systems should have a conventional as well as a nuclear capability. Finally, although the Navy has recognised the advantages of using vehicles in combination, no detection and attack system has been so designed. Such,a system gives promise of producing the greatest effectiveness. Single transmitters with multiple receivers would be one such method. The receivers might be in smaller ships or in helicopters. An integrated system of surface ships, aircraft, helicopters and submarines could be developed and certainly needs to be studied. Using vehicles in combination creates requirements for control and communications. While the weapon system concept is much advocated, no anti-submarine system has been developed, with the exception of the drone anti-submarine helicopter (DASH), which utilises multiple vehicles in combination. A final factor influencing all these capabilities is time. The faster an encounter can proceed through its phases from detection to destruction, the less our forces can be diverted and the more they can concentrate on the mission. Time assumes almost paramount importance when many submarines are in opposition. CONCLUSION From such a broad plan as is advocated supporting plans could be developed which would be in fact the operation orders for the implementation. Such supporting plans would include an Operational Intelligence Plan, Oceanographic Plan, Material Development Plan, Tactical Development Plan, a Training Plan and possibly an Operations Plan. In the broad plan and in all supporting plans, the criteria which should be applied when an item is considered for inclusion are two: What can we reasonably expect to get for our money? Will the dividend be realised in the operating forces before technological improvement in the target cancels the profit ? THE TRIBALS MEMORIAL FUND RECALLS NAVAL HISTORY 373 When discussion of a plan is started ideas for reorganisation eventually are brought up. There is always a tendency to try to correct conditions by reorganizing, probably because that is something that can always be done while other corrective action requires waiting on developments or obtaining money. Reorganisation in advance of proven necessity generally results in organisation which is not satisfactory for the situation as it ultimately develops. It is considered that the concept and its implementation would indicate when reorganisation would be required to make it most effective. It is better to allow the organisation to follow developments than to try to anticipate them. While submarine defense alone has been discussed it would be unrealistic to suppose that it exists in a vacuum. At the highest levels it must be weighed against the other missions of the Navy and its relation to Strike Warfare, Amphibious Warfare, Air Defence and the Polaris programme. Such an over-all concept as is advocated however, would result in a better appreciation of the place of anti-submarine warfare in the entire defense effort and help the Navy achieve the most effective balance among its many obligations and commitments. The Tribals Memorial Fund Recalls Naval History T HIS year sees the reappearance in the Royal Navy of the famous Tribal names, with two general purpose frigates of the new Tribal Class commissioning by the Autumn. They are H.M.S. Ashanti and H.M.S. Gurkha, and five more of these Type 81 frigates are to follow. The Battle Honours of all the war-time Tribals-of which there were 16 in the Royal Navy-are believed to be unrivalled by any other class of ship, and H.M.S. Nubian gained 13 individual Battle Honours between 1939 and 1945, which is a record only bettered by H.M.S. Warspite's total of 14. To commemorate this record of service it is hoped to make a presentation to each new Tribal frigate and a Committee has been formed to organise an appeal to be known as the Tribals Memorial Fund. Patrons of the Fund are Admiral of the Fleet Sir Philip L. Vian, G.C.B., K.B.E., D.S.O. and two Bars, and Admiral Sir R. S. Gresham Nicholson, K.C.B., C.B., D.S.O., D.S.C. Chairman of the Fund is Admiral Sir Frederick R. Parham, G.B.E., K.C.B., D.S.O. The man who first conceived the idea of naming a flotilla of destroyers after well known tribes chose better than he thought. His own name, unfortunately, has sunk into oblivion, but the ships he named have become a tradition in the Navy. We may, perhaps, raise our eyebrows a little at Crusader as a tribal name-Coeurde-Lion, one thinks, would not have approved-but the others were magnificent for destroyers. Some of the first tribal names were ready-made, so to speak. Amazon and Saracen, Mohawk, Cossack, and Tartar, already had a respectable history in the Navy. There 374 THE TRIBALS MEMORIAL FUND RECALLS NAVAL HISTORY had been a Tartar in 1702 which had fought at Velez Malaga with Rooke and Clowdisley Shovel, and such was her fame as a fighter that when she captured a French warship in 1705, it was added to the English fleet as H.M.S. Child's Play. In 1854, when two ships were building in British yards to the order of the Russian Navy, they were both taken over when the Crimean War was declared. Both fought against Russia in that war, and what more natural than that they should be named Tartar and Cossack. The first Tribals were ordered in 1906. They were, rather optimistically, described as ocean-going destroyers although they carried only enough oil to steam 1,500 miles at economical speed. At full speed they did 33-34 knots, a big advance on the preceding 'River' class with a mere 26. All the first Tribals were different, as the individual designs were left to the builders, with as much as 38 feet between the longest and shortest and 220 tons between the heaviest and lightest. Some had three funnels, others four. Throughout the first world war they served in the Dover Patrol, an endless, exacting duty of long patrol and short and fierce action with few highlights. Two, the Ghurka and the Maori, were sunk by mines; two more, the Nubian and the Zulu, were badly damaged by torpedo and mine respectively. Each, however, had still a part, or half a part, to play in the Dover Patrol. The undamaged fore part of the Zulu was joined to the undamaged after part of the Nubian, and the new ship sailed as the Zubian. She earned her keep when she sank the German submarine U.C.50 in 1918. Bv 1919 these first Tribals had finished their careers. those that survived the war-being sold for breaking-up. In 1936, two new flotillas of large destroyers were ordered as a counter to the big German destroyers laid down in 1934-35 and the large Italian 'Scout' destroyers commissioned in 1928-29. Too big and too expensive for work with the fleet, their appearance gave an opportunity to depart from the pre-war practice of giving each destroyer class names beginning with the same letter of the alphabet. The Ships' Names Committee had worked through the alphabet from A to I since the war and here was a chance to revive names that had been well-loved among destroyer men. A second generation of Tribals was born, ships whose fame was to spread all over the world. Sixteen of the new Tribals were built, big destroyers with very long forecastles, handsome in the extreme. They carried the unusual armament-for destroyers of eight 4.7-inch guns and only four torpedo tubes. All had a speed of over 36 knots, and their size, speed, and armament made them formidable opponents of anything the Germans or Italians could put out in the destroyer line. About the only ocean that did not see them during thi war was the Pacific, and of the sixteen ~ r i b a & which served in the fleet in 1939, only four remained in 1945. It was in February, 1940, that the first Tribal name sprang into the public consciousness. On the night of the 16th the Cossack, having discovered the German Altmark in Norwegian territorial waters, steamed into Josing Fiord and removed from her empty holds the British merchant seamen who had been captured by the Graf Spee during her cruise in the Indian and South Atlantic oceans. 'The Navy's hereY,which was the cry of the Cossack's boarding party as it swarmed on board the Altmark, tickled the public fancy almost to become a naval watchword. Hard on the Altmark incident came the second battle of Narvik on 13th April. Four Tribals were engaged there, the Cossack, Bedouin, Punjabi, and Eskimo, and the THE TRIBALS MEMORIAL FUND RECALLS NAVAL HISTORY 375 destruction of eight German destroyers and one U-boat without loss made it a memorable victory, though for a time it was touch and go with the Eskimo. A torpedo from an enemy destroyer blew her bows off, and for a time she was firmly anchored by the wreckage of her forecastle until the rising tide lifted her clear. She steamed down the fiord stern first to a quiet corner for running repairs, and patched herself up sufficiently for the passage home. She was back, with new bows built onto her, in five months. She was more fortunate than the Gurkha, which sank as the result of a bombing attack off Bergen on 9th April. Her loss was so deeply felt by the men after whom she was named that every officer and man in the Gurkha Brigade voluntarily subscribed one day's pay to buy a new Gurkha. The destroyer Larne, then building, was renamed to take her place, only to fall a victim to a U-boat's torpedo in the Mediterranean two years later. The chase of the Bismark gave the Tribals another opportunity of proving their mettle. The Somali, Tartar, and Mashona were escorting the Rodney and were in at the death; the Cossack, Maori, Zulu, and Sikh were even more fortunate. As the last light was dying an 26th May, 1941, the four destroyers, spread on a line of bearing, found the enemy. Their job was to shadow and hold her through the night until the avenging guns of the Home Fleet could come up with her in the morning. As darkness fell, the weather deteriorated, with high winds and heavy rain squalls. Although the Bismarck had been heavily damaged in an air attack from the Ark Royal, her radar-directed gunfire was uncannily accurate in the darkness. Eight 15-inch, twelve 5.9 inch, and sixteen 4.1-inch guns, expertly fired and controlled, made her still a formidable adversary for four Tribals. Yet they held her fast throughout the tempestuous night and delivered her in the morning to theKing George V and the Rodney. What was more, they had in the meantime hit her twice with torpedoes. Farther south, other Tribals were active in the Mediterranean. The Mohawk and Nubian had been at Matapan, and a fortnight later both were engaged, with two other destroyers, in an action off Sfax, in Tunisia, in which three Italian destroyers and a convoy of five supply ships were obliterated. Most of the big Mediterranean actions-the convoys to Malta, the second battle of Sirte, Greece, and Crete-had their Tribal representatives, and the number of smaller actions up and down those waters in which they fought was legion. By 1944 the tide of war, which had turned earlier and was now flowing strongly towards an allied victory, no more than four Tribals were left out of the original 16, the Ashanti, Eskimo, Nubian and Tartar. All four were engaged in the Normandy landings, and with that great operation safely launched, the Tartar, Nubian and Eskimo sailed for the Indian Ocean to take a part in the war against Japan. Between them, the sixteen Tribals collected no fewer than 95 Battle Honours, of which the Nubian was responsible for 13 and the Tartar for 12. In the whole fleet, only the ubiquitous Warspite put up a nobler score with 14, and only one other destroyer, the Jervis, equalled the Nubian's bag. The bones of these famous ships lie scattered up and down the oceans of the world. Three of them reached their end in the Arctic, one of them tragically under the bows of theKing George V in a thick fog. Two lie off Tobruk, victims of the fierce fight for that bleak fortress on the North African shore. Two more, one of 376 SURVIVAL AT SEA them the Cossack, mingle their bones with those of that great host of ships which met their end in the Atlantic. When the war ended in 1945, the day of these Tribals was over. They had made their names known and admired throughout the naval world, catching the eye and the ear of the public as, perhaps, no other destroyers had done, and adding a second 'cachet' to the older Tribals of the Dover Patrol in the first German war. The four survivors of 1945 did not last long. Naval technology was advancing too fast for them and the new weapons being evolved overtook their usefulness. By 1949, all were gone. A third generation of Tribals is on the stocks, and the first of them, the Ashaltti, should be at sea this year. These new Tribals are general purpose frigates, the first frigates in the fleet designed to carry a helicopter for anti-submarine reconnaissance. Seven of them have been ordered, and their names ring like bells with the memories of their illustrious ancestors. Ashanti, Eskimo, Gurkha, Mohawk, Nubian, Tartar and Zulu; in the Navy, these are names to conjure with. The Tribals Memorial Fund will, through its presentations to the new generation of ships, help to link the old names with the new. Treasurer of the Fund is Captain E. N. Sinclair, D.S.C., R.N., Captain of H.M.S. Sea Eagle, Londonderry, Northern Ireland, who is hoping to receive contributions from not only all those officers and ratings of the Royal Navy who served in the old Tribals, but also those of the Commonwealth Navies who fought in this famous Class from 1938 onwards. Contributions, which in the case of individuals it has been suggested should be limited to two guineas, should be made out to the Tribals Memorial Fund and forwarded to Captain Sinclair, at H.M.S. Sea Eagle. Survival a t Sea u P to the time of the Battle of Trafalgar, nothing at all appears to have been done to provide life-saving equipment for the seafarer. If a ship sank, her survivors had literally to 'sink or swim'-unless they were lucky enough to find a piece of floating wreckage to cling to. In 1806, however, Daniel of Wapping invented an inflatable leather lifebelt for which he was awarded the Gold Medal of the Society of Arts, but there is no evidence that this life-jacket was adopted by either the Mercantile Marine or the Royal Navy. I t does not seem to have been until the time of the Great Exhibition of 1851 that some kind of official recognition was given to life-saving inventions. A flood of articles and 'machines' was submitted, though whether the inventors were attracted by the possibility of a Gold Medal or were genuinely moved by an affection for the British sailor it would be hard to say. Among those who produced ideas at this time was John Reeks of Chelsea, whose 'Nautical Cap' was intended to be worn as a regular item of clothing, as well as providing a means of saving life. This was improved upon by Commander Inglefield who developed it into a 'life preserver hat.' This contained a 'double air-tight lining made of prepared mackintosh material with a becket on the lower crown to pull, and so open up the cap; there is a valve on SURVIVAL AT SEA 377 the upper half for inflation'. Inglefield pointed out the further advantage that it would be nearest to hand to throw to a man overboard, and suggested that it should be understood that no disciplinary action would be taken against a man seen to throw this one item of his clothing deliberately over the side. At about this time Alexander Carte produced an adjustable cork life-belt, and this did not differ much from the equivalent found today. Apart from the National Lifeboat Institution, which later adopted this cork belt, no one seems to have done anything much as a result of this mid-19th century spate of enthusiasm. But although the seaman was really no better off, at least a promising start had been made, and the public was beginning to take an interest in the subject. All the same, it is not until two months after the outbreak of the 1914-18 war that one can find mention of any new type of life-saving equipment. Then an ill-conceived rubber collar was introduced and issued to all hands in the Home and Mediterranean Fleets. I t was designed to fit round a man's neck to keep his head above water. When H.M.S. Formidable was sunk in January, 1915, a number of men wearing these collars broke their necks on jumping into the water. The collar was promptly withdrawn, and was replaced by a rubber belt in 1916. The 'Carley Float' was brought into service during the 1914-18 war also. When the Second World War started, no personal life-saving gear was available, and ships of the Fleet were equipped only with Carley Floats for the numbers of the ships' companies in excess of the full 'abandon ship' capacity of the ships' boats. Although inflatable life-belts were issued later, the story of Survival at Sea during this war is not a pretty one, and with the cheers of VJ Day still ringing in its ears, a dedicated group under Admiral Talbot got down to the business of improving the Navy's life-saving methods and equipment. The archives of all seafaring contestants of World War I1 were studied-as well as a considerable amount of American, German and Japanese hardware-and the Talbot Report was laid before the Board of Admiralty in April, 1946. Something of the sensation it caused can be judged from the following extracts :'Though no accurate records are available as to the cause of deaths, an examination of the casualty reports shows that between 30,000 and 40,000 officers and men, some 66 per cent of the total R.N. casualties, probably lost their lives through drowning. Though no records exist, it is clear from the reports of survivors that the number of men who died after reaching some temporary lodgement in the water was very large indeed.' 'The standard life-jacket used by the R.N. during the period 1939-45 was condemned by the P. and R.T. School in 1940.' 'No allowance was made in the ships' drawings for the provision of Carley Floats and equipment, and it was left to the Executive Officer to decide how many rafts were required, and of what type, and where to stow them.' 'Only 10 per cent of the Carley Floats carried by H.M. ships sunk ever became water-borne.' 'We have been unable to find any directive detailing any one Admiralty Department as being specifically responsible for life-saving matters-matters which can only be described as of paramount importance, not only to personnel afloat, but also to the war effort as a whole.' 'There seems to have been little research and no planned effort in connection with Survival at Sea except in the Fleet Air Arm.' 378 SURVIVAL AT SEA Among many important recommendations made by the Talbot Committee were the adoption by the Royal Navy of inflatable life-saving equipment, and the formation of a permanent committee charged with the task of providing the Fleet with the most efficient gear-and of keeping under review new developments in this field. The Naval Life-Saving Committee was formed early in 1947, and largely as a result of its endeavours the Royal Navy today is better equipped life-saving-wise than any other. The efforts of the R.N.L.S.C. have also done more than anything else to promote the use of inflatable life rafts in the Merchant Navies of the world, and British trawlers are now bound by law to carry them. One trawler skipper, after being ship-wrecked and picked up in one, said he would in no circumstances ever sail in future without it! The standard Naval 20-man raft was decided upon after a very considerable number of most exhaustive (and exhausting) tests and trials. The raft consists of an oval-shaped main buoyancy chamber to which are attached a thwart, a floor and two arches, all of which are inflatable. A 'tent', which consists of two layers of material separated by an air space, is supported by the arches, and fixed to the buoyancy tube. Two inflatable 'cushions' are fitted round the circumference of the floor, one each side of the thwart. Those in the raft are thus protected by a layer of air which insulates them from extremes of temperature outside the raft. It is, in effect, a floating thermos container. Prototype trials were conducted at Tromso in 1950, and the value of the double skin was very soon proved when, despite an outside temperature of 15" below freezing point, within thirty minutes the inside of the 'tent' was so warm that the entrance had to be opened to let the twenty people there cool down. One intrepid volunteer showed his confidence in the raft by swimming to it (sea and air temperatures of 35°F and 15°F respectively), relying on being resuscitated solely by the body heat of the men already in it. The R.N.L.S.C. report noted that if any type of life-saving equipment in use in H.M. ships during World War I1 had been used, the subjects could not have been expected to survive for more than a few hours-instead of the 4$ days of this trial. The R.N.L.S.C. has sponsored a new inflatable life-jacket also, and this is with the Fleet now. It is entirely self-righting, and the angle of flotation is such that a man's occipital (i.e. back of head) area is kept clear of the water. The importance of this in prolonging survival in the water was one of the lessons learnt from the results of the gruesome German concentration camps' experiments studied by the Talbot Committee. Two further life-jackets, one inherently buoyant, the other inflating automatically when immersed in water, are about to be introduced for special uses. For example, the inherently buoyant one will be used by sea-boat passengers; the selfinflating one by men working in exposed positions at sea. The Committee is still trying to produce economically a 'Survival Suit' to keep the sailor warm and dry for the journey from ship to raft in cold climates, and it is hoped to issue these to the Fleet before very long. The survival pack supplied for each naval raft contains enough food and water to allow the twenty men to survive for more than five days. Now that radio homing beacons are being provided also, there can be few parts of the world where a seafarer might abandon ship without every prospect of living to tell the tale; a remarkable achievement, and a far and happy cry from the days of Trafalgar. M.M.O. Musings of an Octogenarian The author, Captain T. Dannreuther, now rising 90, joined the 'Britannia' in 1885 and qualified 'NT' in 1897. MAGIC SWORD N 1895 H.M.S. Melita was a sloop employed in the Red Sea. She was built in Malta, square rigged on the fore and mainmast, with no bridge or conning tower; her five-inch guns were in sponsons of which a pair were on the upper deck below the fore end of the poop, which also served as the station for the officer of the watch, with a standard Thompson compass and a binnacle for the hand wheel on the upper deck below. As was customary, the Commander-in-command (a Gunnery expert) appointed the action stations of the three Lieutenants and of these the Navigating Officer became officer of the watch and also in charge of the pair of 5-inch guns below what served as a bridge and the Commander insisted that officers of quarters at action stations should wear their swords. As the Navigating Officer I remonstrated without effect; so the next time our dynamo was working to supply a searchlight I took my sword down to it and made it a good magnet with a blue point and red hilt. Next time we exercised 'general quarters' on a Friday at sea I invited the Commander to watch the standard compass whilst I paced below it and demonstrated that it was impossible to use the compass whilst wearing a sword. The Commander compromised by having a pair of hooks placed on his skylight aft and said my sword might be placed there at 'quarters' and so this was the practice for the rest of the commission. I In 1902, when serving as Navigating Officer of H.M.S. Hood at Malta, I happened to be the Officer of the Guard for the day when I had to take the duty picket boat out to meet the Japanese Flagship (a British built battleship) on her way to King Edward VII's Coronation Review at Spithead. This meant my wearing cocked hat and epaulettes with sword. A mile off the entrance to Valetta I was asked on board and agreed after pointing out that I would have to remain until the formality of pratique had concluded. I asked the Flag Lieutenant to enquire when it would be convenient to exchange visits and was then conducted to the compass platform (monkey island) where I was introduced to the Captain who spoke good English. A Maltese boat hailed to ask if a pilot was wanted and he declined when I pointed out that there were no dangers underwater and offered to show him how our battleships went to their appointed buoys. Then a curious incident occurred. The Japanese Navigating Officer was fiddling with his Thompson standard compass and appeared very puzzled and nervous when I broke out in uncontrolled laughter which I could not explain. I realised that the red magnetic hilt of my old sword was twisting his compass card round. When I recovered I pointed out the pair of beacons he had to keep in line for entrance through the breakwater and asked him to tell his quartermaster to follow them, which 380 MUSINGS OF A N OCTOGENARIAN he did. I told the Captain when to stop and when to reverse to turn round at his buoys and the ship went round like a top in record time and secured. A few days later when I was again Officer of the Guard, just before 7.30 a.m. I was sent for to Admiralty House where the Commander-in-Chief (Admiral Sir John Fisher) gave me his own photograph which I was to deliver to the Japanese Admiral as a parting gift, the ship being due to sail at 8 a.m. This I managed to do and to my surprise was met on board by the Admiral himself who shook hands and said our C-in-C had complimented him on the way his ship was handled and he in turn wished to thank me for my help. No one in our Service even knew that I had piloted her into her berth. Later, when Sir John Fisher was giving up command to become Second Sea Lord I had been given the task of writing his Mediterranean lectures to Officers at Admiralty House and when I presented the typed copies he asked me if I had any ideas for him to use at the Admiralty. I told him that Navigating Officers were not satisfied with the promotion system. The reason was that when St& Commanders became obsolete it was promised that there should always be 70 Commanders (N) and in practice this meant that those promoted from Lieutenants were always behind the Gunnery and Torpedo specialists. We would like our extra 6d. a day withdrawn and our chances of promotion to be by merit. I found out that neither he nor his Flag Captain had known who had piloted the Japanese Flagship into Valetta and that he was so satisfied with the competence of Navigating Officers that it was not necessary to select one for any special job. Gunnery officers promotions depend upon annual target practice results; the Navigating Officer whenever a ship puts to sea. I offered to bring in the Japanese Flagship in our Naval fashion on my own; but if I had made a mess of it I would certainly have been Court-Martialled and my Service career ruined. The Admiral appeared much impressed but made the remark that Navigating Officers would have to take their turn as executive officers and First Lieutenants to show ability in organisation and fitness for command. I offered to be the first to undertake such duties and was appointed 'First and N' of the new Leuiathan fitting out for China. I must remember to get my sword de-magnetised some time! T H E TRUTH ABOUT T H E RED SEA In 1896 the Viceroy of India had appointed an Indian surveyor as a Vice Consul at Jeddah in the Red Sea to investigate a project for running a railway from Jeddah to Mecca for our pilgrims. The local Bedouins, who lived by preying upon the pilgrim traffic, caught the new Vice Consul out riding near Eve's Tomb and killed him. Our Foreign Office demanded reparation and the Sultan of Turkey ordered the Jeddah Custom House to collect the damages and H.M.S. Melita was to remain in Jeddah until they were paid. There were only three Englishmen resident in Jeddah and no leave to land was granted to officers or men; but during this stay we had some welcome visitors and this is where the Longitude story begins. The Austrian Navy had commissioned their surveying vessel Pola to make astronomical observations with a 12-inch grand instrument-it was a large theodolite which could be set up on marked stones-and, with this, sets of pairs of stars were observed at different altitudes east and west for Longitude and ex-meridian for Latitude. The idea was not only to determine the Longitude from the Greenwich meridian but also to rescale the normal Refraction, to be subtracted from a star's apparent altitude MUSINGS OF AN OCTOGENARIAN 38 1 based on a temperature of 50 degrees F., which was known to be abnormal between land and sea breezes in the Red Sea summer. As Navigating Officer of the Melita I was much interested in these observations and checked the work out. The Admiralty Sailing Directions of the. period pointed out that abnormal transverse currents had been common in the Red Sea and were not due to 'leeway' in sailing ships only but were unaccounted for. Well, the net result of the 'grand instrument' observation at all the ports on both sides of the Red Sea proved that the Sea itself was nearly five miles narrower than as charted! This was reported to our Hydrographer with the evidence and he replied that the chart had been made up of six surveys of different dates and nationality and that errors in the prime meridians used had caused the confusion. Redrawing the chart meant eliminating bogus transverse currents and this is the story of how it was discovered. We had no six pips from Greenwich to obtain chronometer errors, but the Austrian Pola had a fine set which chimed with Melita. CALIFORNIA, HERE I COME! A hundred years ago one of Her Majesty's Surveying Vessels had just completed a survey of the harbour and entrance bar to San Diego in California, but had another week's work sounding in the approaches to the port. During sounding operations it was the custom to set up a tide pole on the beach and leave an Able Seaman in charge to record the local times of high and low water and the height then shown by the tide gauge. He had a small tent, watch and signal lantern, and a fortnight's provisions. A young Irish Able Seaman, named O'Brien, was thus employed when the American Civil War caused the Admiralty to order H.M. Ships on the Pacific Coast to leave their Station and assemble up the East coast of North America. A frigate collected the surveying vessel and took her South, leaving O'Brien stranded ashore. When his provisions ran out O'Brien bargained with the nearest fruit farmer to work on his farm for his keep provided he was allowed time off to carry on his tide gauge duties. This he did for over two years and, meanwhile, married the farmer's daughter. After the Civil War one of H.M. Ships called at San Diego and O'Brien reported on board with his tide gauge logs. He should have joined the ship but requested, as he had more than two years pay due to him, which was more than sufficient to purchase his discharge, that he be left at the farm until his discharge was approved -which it was. Our Hydrographer thus obtained the first long series of tidal records ever made on the Pacific Coast. When the farmer died, O'Brien inherited the farm and prospered. He spent all he had in buying the foreshore land between his farm and the small San Diego town. He laid it out in seaside plots of which he sold alternate plots and connected them up to town with road and cable tram-car services and his land became valuable. Next he built the Hotel del Coronado, the 'finest hotel on earth'. It had 3 to 500 guest rooms fitted with bathrooms which let, all-found, board and many extras, at an all-in charge of 5 dollars a day, paid in advance; it became very popular with holiday makers. The amenities did not include liquor but there were no other 'extras'. There were free trams, free boating and sailing, an ostrich farm, bowling greens, a jackass rabbit hunt with (mongrel) hounds with horses and stabling free; 382 MUSINGS OF A N OCTOGENARIAN indoors there were free meals at all times, a swimming pool, a skittle alley, billiards and a ball room with dance band. It was said that he practically owned San Diego and was elected Mayor year after year, but he declined to become an American citizen which displeased the Federal Authorities. He was still Mayor when we met him in 1897 and he showed us one of his unsold plots in his fruit farm which he declared was an 'oil strike' though it only produced half a barrel of treacle-like oil a day; he said he had no intention of selling until it was a 'gold mine'. \ In 1897, H.M.S. Leander, a second-class cruiser, after taking part in the Spithead Diamond Jubilee Review of that year was destined for the Pacific Station and ordered to convoy a new destroyer, Virago, to Esquimalt, calling at ports to refuel her. We towed her across the Atlantic, passed through the Straits of Magellan and Smythe's Channels and called at Acapulco in Mexico in December. Here, all we could get for Christmas was 30 turkeys for our ship's company. However, we were due to coal Virago on December 26th, at San Diego, which was renowned for its orchards and American food; but coming up the coast the previous night we ran into a thick fog. As we approached San Diego and the water shallowed we stopped and were about to anchor until the weather cleared when we heard the Bell Buoy which marks the entrance to the bar and channel into harbour, so we proceeded by leadline soundings at slow speed knowing exactly where we were. We passed the Harbour Master and Quarantine Station Jetty and went on until we heard so many fog bells of ships at anchor that, about midnight, Leander anchored with our destroyer Virago just ahead. This was our first visit to the United States and we did not know what sort of a reception to expect; according to custom at 8 a.m. (still in fog) we fired a 21-gun salute to the American Flag. The first sign of life we saw was an eight-oared gig manned by girls in swim suits, attracted to us by the gunfire, asking to come on board. We replied that we were waiting for the doctor to give us pratique and they said they would dig him out. They pulled ashore and telephoned the Mayor! O'Brien in turn raised hell with the harbour master, quarantine station, the U.S. gunboats in port, and asked the Military Post why they took an hour to answer our salute knowing that our Consul expected us in to coal Virago. Then O'Brien himself came off to the Leander, before any of these officials or our Consul showed up, and at once struck up a friendship with our Captain, who was also an Irishman (Captain Frederick Fogarty Fegen). O'Brien called on our Ward Room and made us all guests of his grand hotel and the local clubs. It was not until noon that we could move up to the coaling station berth off Spreckler's Wharf. It appears that the Federal officials were all hostile or jealous of O'Brien, now over 60 but still Mayor, though not an American; and no doubt he was delighted at a chance to take the change out of them. The climax came when a U.S. Revenue Cutter came in three days later saying that they had been unable to make port because of the fog. 'What!' roared O'Brien, 'our own coast-guard cannot find their own harbour when a Britisher comes in to find the whole lot of you asleep! Is this how Columbus discovered America ?' * * * * * * * * MUSINGS OF AN OCTOGENARIAN 383 ST. FELIX STORY In 1900 after a period of diplomatic tensions, H.M.S. Leander at Coquimbo was alerted by a cable from the Admiralty. Earlier, with the Consul and British Agents, we had been ordered to buy up all Welsh coal available on the South American coast and when times appeared more peaceful surplus stocks were sold; but it appeared the Admiralty had still on hand the Welsh coal cargoes of three British sailing ships which had left Wales on voyage to Valparaiso for orders and which had been directed on to Esquimalc Naval Yard. These three sailing ships were never heard of again and, as Government property, cargoes were uninsured. Some 500 sea miles West of Coquimbo there lies in Longitude 80" West a group of small uninhabited and unlit islets belonging to Chile and our unexpected cable was an order to search these-St. Felix and St. Ambrose Islands-for any trace of wreckage which might account for the lost sailing ships. Thus it was that at 4 a.m. on October 7th, we sighted St. Ambrose Island and, after a complete circuit close in, moved into an open roadstead off St. Felix Island where we found depth to anchor for a few hours and explore. Ashore there was green grass and the effect of tidal rise was shown by salted white rocks. As the Navigating Officer, since 4 a.m. I had kept a record of soundings made every ten minutes and made a sextant survey of the coast lines. When at anchor I borrowed the Gunnery Lieutenant's new toy, a 4 feet 6 inch Barr & Stroud range finder, on the pretext that I wanted to test its reliability and I used a boat to sound out the anchorage whilst my 'tankey' midshipman at the standard compass recorded my bearing and distance by range finder whilst I took simultaneous masthead angles. This produced quite a good plot on a mooring board. The shore party returned with nothing except an empty rifle cartridge case which I kept; they found nothing alive; the grass was not eaten down and no nests found. Fish were abundant and one even tried to bite the hand lead with which I was sounding. At 6 p.m. we proceeded to circle the remainder of the islets, rounding the north of St. Felix Island still surveying until dark. On return to Coquimbo we cabled 'Nothing found' to Admiralty; but my story does not end there. We went to Valparaiso where I called upon the Chilean Hydrographer and showed him the fair sheet of my survey of the islands and said I was sending it to our Hydrographer to chart. He was delighted and his own investigations determined from the ordnance depot the date the cartridge case had been issued; he found that his government had offered a free lease of the island to any farmer who would agree to maintain a lighthouse on St. Felix on moonless nights. A volunteer was taken by a gunboat to examine but, as they could find no fresh water, sheep could not be maintained, and so the farmer declined and they left. I was not only thanked by the Hydrographer, but my anchorage of St. Felix Road was issued on a chart 'full size', which is rare. The reason was that it was rated a secret coaling station for war and in the First World War was actually used by H.M.S. Australia and a Japanese cruiser searching for the German Scharnhorst and Gneisenau, later sunk by H.M.S. Invincible and Infexible off the Falkland Isles. T.D. 'Women Aboard' W OMEN in a man-of-war. No novelty under Elizabeth 11, but for a Victorian a news headline recalling old misgivings. Not even a happy mother's rapturous account of a recent day at sea in a carrier, has wholly dispelled them. The problems women's presence can bring led me to a head-on collision with my Admiral when I took over my first command as a captain at Hong Kong in 1923. How far my prejudices derived from experience or from shyness, I am no judge. During Queen Victoria's visit to Dublin in April 1900, one battleship of the Channel Fleet was open daily to the public. As a raw midshipman in charge of the Majestic's steam pinnace I first heard of this when my fatherly bearded coxswain jerked a pitying thumb at a sister ship and said 'Women aboard'. This leading seaman, ex-chief petty officer, was laconic but I had learned more from his few words and expressive nods and winks than from anyone else in that tough flagship. His tone mingled warning with a touch of regret, suddenly making me wonder if his own fall had been connected with those snares for sailors ashore-women and wine. The then fashionable method of 'larning warts' was to misinform them and send them on fool's errands, to tell them of no laws till they had broken them, when 'Little Benjamin' would ensure that one being remembered. Max Horton and I received 3 of the best the day after joining, for not locking our sea chests, and learned of more important rules only from other and worse sufferers. The Majestic was open on the following Saturday from 2 to 5 but I can only remember a prolonged hectic and cheerful riot, with nothing specially feminine about it. Our gunroom inhabited by 33 officers, aged 16 to 26 seemed to me excessively masculine, and an unimaginable setting for womenfolk. My impressions of the happy Dublin crowd were akin to those of a monkey in the zoo on an August Bank holiday. My next experience of women on board was more characteristic of the period and King and Queen of more vivid. My log for 6th December, 1900, says:-'4-15. Portugal came on board. 7.00. Undressed ship. 9.00. Illuminated'. Affable King Carlos and the Crown Prince quickly had enough of the 'walk round' planned for them, but Queen Amelie amply atoned for their lack of interest. Of imposing stature, she combined Gallic grace and royal graciousness and wanted to see everything, asked penetrating and intelligent questions of all and sundry and left a trail of delighted sailors behind her. As junior midshipman of the first dog watch, I was told to divert the Crown Prince, who had appeared on the quarterdeck looking sulky and bored. His father had shown great hospitality to wardroom and gunroom, and in spite of his bulk had been too good for them at tennis. The Royal family all spoke good English, but the Crown Prince, already fat though about my own age, lacked his parents' charm. He refused all my gambits and seemed pompous though it may have been shyness. When his mother's head appeared through the gunlayer's hatch on top of the 12-inch turret, and the equally large lieutenant (Oliver Backhouse) helped her to struggle gaily out, he turned his back on what he evidently thought an undignified spectacle. She had made a strenuous inspection and for days afterwards stories were swapped of her lively comments, delivered in perfect English adorned by an attractive French lisp. In the gunroom flat crowded by newly painted chests, she had asked to see inside one: Her numerous escort competed in trying to lift open the heavy lids, only to find them obediently locked. Unfortunately, seeing her disappointment, a zealous and hefty lieutenant forced open one wedged shut by a young officer apt to mislay keys. He was also untidy, and hurrying on watch after a change and wash, had left chaos under the lid. Delight in the hope of seeing secrets changed to a cry of mock horror-'He ought to pee flogged'. Automatically he would have been, for the double crime of slovenliness and insecurity. I believe it due to the Queen's intuition and charm that he was not. I fancy her noting the naval reaction to her gay involuntary remark, and quickly saying to our first lieutenant (Robert Falcon-Scott) 'No! Promise me!' But I was plagued with 'He ought to pee flogged' for the rest of the nineteenth century. The Navy in December 1900, might have complacently looked back at 100 years of the Pax Britannica imposed on the lesser breeds by its might, but none of us did. The death of Queen Victoria within a month was unthinkable, and the assassination, within a decade, of the King of Portugal by his subjects, even more so, if we had thought about it, but we were far too busy avoiding minor more personal dangers. Women in submarines I thought more distracting than in battleships. In 1905 the captain of A.11, my first submarine appointment, was strongly of that opinion, after an incident in the Holland boat from which he had recently come. When H.M.S. Bulwark was launched, the lively lady due to crack the bottle, expressed (probably the night before to the C-in-C Portsmouth) the wish to go down in a submarine. The Thames and her half dozen submarines were high up Fareham creek, in company with the old powder hulks also regarded as dangerous. The lunacy of ordering even the smallest submarine to dive in that narrow and shallow creek, is obvious from a glance at the chart. The lady and a black-coated Admiralty official arrived in the C-in-C's barge close on the heels of the signal ordering her wish to be fulfilled. Old Prowse (actually 24). a dear chap, with a long lugubrious face and a sense of humour to match, had hurriedly cast off from alongside, protesting vainly but told to obey orders. The crew of a Holland boat was 6 and two more made a crowd, but they were quickly on board and down the two foot high conning tower, followed by Prowse closing the lid after him. Hearing the launch was barely an hour away, he at once started to flood his tanks and go ahead. Inevitably in that narrow ill-marked creek, after a short run and happily before he could gain depth, he dipped his nose straight into the mud. Blowing tanks and going astern failed to move her and the conning tower was under water. Luckily only a matter of inches with the tide ebbing. The lady, though the danger to her clothes at any rate was real, laughed gaily. Poor Prowse in his sepulchral voice said 'It's fun for you: It's death for me; we are not allowed to make mistakes'. Her civilian escort murmured he hoped not, but Prowse took little notice of him. The tide fell, the lid was opened and the lady and First Lord-Selborne-just made their date. Prowse survived and in 1905 brought A.ll-the latest of the new A class-from Vickers' at Barrow to Fort Blockhouse, lately taken over from the garrison gunners as H.M.S. Dolphin. That he was let in for another dangerous VIP dip, was my fault, which needed a lot of explanation. The C-in-C who expected submarines to dive more safely in harbour than outside, was the genial Admiral Douglas, famous as father to the Japanese Navy. Early in the nineties he and his wife had been visitors at my home and the family all loved him, in spite of his relegation from tennis to croquet, and being seen back-heeling his ball towards a hoop. For years after his visit 'Archibald' was our watchword against excess at table. The full for- mula was 'Archibald! You know port (or cream or sweet) isn't good for you'. To the indignation of children in for dessert, Archibald went without. At Portsmouth he seemed to me distinctly younger, but the same friendly hospitable old gentleman. When Prince Arthur of Connaught visited Portsmouth and stayed at Admiralty House, Admiral Douglas gave a large 'stag' dinner in his honour. As a junior lieutenant (having recently shipped my second stripe on my 21st birthday) known to play the piano, I was asked by the Admiral to come in with the bandmaster and the port, as he planned a sing-song and needed an accompanist. The Stags seemed to me very senior, and the Prince relieved to meet someone of his own age. Brandy followed the port and our elders gossiping about sailing days, forgot about songs. I evidently talked too much about submarines, then a novelty, to Prince Arthur, for next morning about ten the strenuous peace of the depot was broken by a signal from the C-in-C:-'Lieut. Brodie's (!) submarine is to be off the entrance to Haslar creek at 11.30 to embark Prince Arthur of Connaught and the C-in-C for a short dive'. Criticism of the operation was unspoken, but not that of a youngster barely out of the training class, presumed to have talked big about his submarine and what she could do. Cursed by all, shocked to the core, I had little time to kick myself. My job was to get A.ll ready for diving, and to make sure that the crew's working rig, was at its best. Luckily the 16-cylinder petrol engine, the oiliest smelliest feature of a submarine, would not be needed, as A.ll had only about a hundred yards to go to midstream, there to face the flood tide and await the royal barge. Stemming a 3-4 knot current she could keep her position while trimming. An 'A' boat displacing nearly 300 tons must get rid of nearly all her 25 tons of surface buoyancy before the water laps the slender 10 ft. conning tower. Submarines then trimmed stopped, going ahead only when buoyancy became nearly nil or negative. Having only one horizontal tail diving rudder A.ll dived slightly down by the bow, a delicate operation requiring much practice. Our R.V. was uncomfortably close to the Gosport floating bridge chains, and already ships had hooted indignantly at a submarine idling in the middle of the harbour entrance, hardly 200 yards wide. Sharp on time, we inside heard the boathooks of the barge on the hull and four guests came down the conning tower ladder, the portly admiral a close fit in the hatch, preceded by his watchful coxswain guiding his waving feet. An 'A' boat's crew was 12. At diving stations the captain was in the conning tower at the periscope, the crew--4 on stools at their wheels or groups of valves, the rest on the battery boards by their Kingston and other valves. Only the No. 2 officer mobile, watchful over all. 'A' boats had far more space than Hollands, but an admiral on a stool and three more bodies on the battery boards, cramp control of the quiet interior where all listen and the captain need not raise his voice. Halfway up the ladder he was using the conning tower scuttles to supplement his slow all round view through the periscope and issuing orders to the helm and motors in low tones, traffic keeping him busy. I was instructor-'Now we are flooding main ballast tanks through those big valves-that's the diving gauge 0 to 100 ft., the big needle will start flicking when they are nearly full, and show 1 ft. as the water reaches the foot of the conning tower-10 ft. when it tops the lid'. The Admiral after finding his feet and recovering his breath, realised Prowse was remaining half-way up the ladder and said to me 'Just go down and come up again at once'. I murmured that trimming had to be cautious and take time, and only then could we dive by forcing her under at speed. Soon he began to ask questions and I had to show, by interrupting with orders to hands at their stations, that silence was necessary. When the trim is roughly known, one can flood the 4 main tanks in 3-4 minutes and then deal with the remaining margin of buoyancy by means of the smaller auxiliaries, but with four passengers and other unknown weights, one could not risk finding the boat 'heavy'. She might sink tilting uncomfortably and necessitate blowing and starting trim all over again. So a pause and 'Test pet cocks!' These, on top of the tanks, vent air until tanks are full. 'No. 1. Dry-Very good, No. 4. Dry . . . etc'. The Prince's A.D.C., a Rifle Brigade Major, a young veteran of the Boer War had asked 'Where do you get the water from ?' when I began by saying 'Now we are letting the water into the ballast tanks'. This became a classic in 'the Trade'. I feebly continued 'They take 3 to 4 minutes with the vents full open'. After perhaps 2 minutes 'Are we down yet' from the Admiral. After 3 minutes I closed the vents nearly shut from timidity with Prowse's 'Hard a port: Speed up: Starboard ten' coming from the conning tower in quick succession. Knowing the final phase of trimming could be tricky, and a real dive in that narrow trafficky entrance, mildly dangerous,-I was forced to-go cannily. Another 'Are we going down yet' from the Admiral, revealed growing impatience, but the big diving gauge I had told them to watch, was steady at '0'. At last 'No. 4 pet cock! Water' and I ordered 'Stand by to flood X and Y auxiliaries'. Two men shifted their positions on the boards and reported. 'Are we going down yet' for the third time in tones Canute might have used in ultimatum to the waves. 'No. 3 pet Cock! water!' Staccato, from the sailor close behind the Admiral, and at last the first flicker of the depth gauge needle. 'Are we going down yet' fortissimo, from an angry Admiral to whom 'No' would have been insubordination. 'Yes, Sir, just beginning to' pointing at the needle wavering between 0 and 1 ft., and the 'Yes' loudest. 'Then come up at once', decisively an order. With relief I sang out 'Surface -blow all main ballast-Diving rudder hard up.' Movement and the noise of blowing tanks ended the overlong quiet. The Prince had been a model passenger, sitting still saying no word but observing what went on. I think he knew as well as I did, that the water was barely topping the base of the conning tower, the 'bubble' shewing the boat still up by the bow, and the superstructure not visibly lower than when he'd come on board. We had not dived, but he had seen and grasped the process and the mens' part in it. Now his A.D.C. knew the Prince would be back in time for lunch and the Admiral, that the ladies would not be waiting long. It was women aboard the barge that spoiled the submarine set-piece. Sir Archibald, in his kind hospitable way, had planned the dive as preliminary to a luncheon and invited my lady friends to join the party. My dancing partner, besides being the best dancer I have known, when one waltzed to Viennese violins, was a personality who had brightened several naval lives, and caused a few tongues in Southsea to wag. A county golfer, the Admiral and I had more than once played a foursome against her and her elderly K.C. husband. A cheerful affair, the coxwain as caddy seeing to it that Archibald got good lies, which helped us to make a game of it. she also drove a smart pair of greys in tandem, and had teased her shyest admirer by riding one of them into the square at Blockhouse at noon and enquiring for him. Both the Admiral and his 23 year old son had fallen completely under her spell, Lady Douglas, as far as I can remember, less so. Thus it was that when I opened A.llYs forehatch to lead the perspiring Admiral into the fresh air and call the boat alongside, I got a shock. The barge was already there! She had never shoved off! Her stern sheets were full of women among whom, I saw with foreboding, my own large blonde cousin. As the Admiral emerged, a mocking voice from behind her rang out 'Hello Gordon! Why didn't you go down ?' Though suspected of being better at bridge and dancing than at my job, I managed to avoid being thrown out, and thanks to an expanding submarine service, reached command of A.12 in April '06. From then on, with work great fun and games only a little more serious, life in the Navy before 1914 was bliss nearly all the time. Women, adorable ashore on their pedestals, were well away from the world's best club-a bachelor wardroom. Not till March '14 did I get another warning of the risks that come aboard with them. At Gibraltar, the Rapid-my new command, was secured to the seaward arm of the North Mole, with 2 of her 3 B. Class submarines alongside. On the night of the Gunners' Ball, the captain of B.6 (my former No. 2 in C.ll) invited to dinner a Galway girl and her hospitable aunt from the Reina Cristina at Algeciras. With 8 wardroom officers all told and little space for more, a party required co-operation and was a rare event. During dinner a gale sprang up and the Rapid began to strain unhappily at her wires, and the submarines to bump. This meant no dance for some of us, but worse was to come. News that the dance was off and all boat services to Algeciras suspended, and finally that cabs ordered, had refused to cross the exposed mole. Our guest thought this more fun than a dance and her partners delightedly offered to put their cabins or their submarines at her service, while her chaperone showed serene confidence in the Navy. Only to me the situation seemed sinister and 'stagey' with myself cast for the role of stooge. Happily I had one supporter, also of the ripe age of thirty and wearing an extra half stripe, who was a tower of strength. While I dealt with the safety of the ships, he made a sortie and returned driving a cab with a scared 'Scorp' inside, and having proved it practicable, drove our guests across the spray swept mole. Scouring Gibraltar he found them accommodation, if sadly below Reina Cristina standard. The warnings of that stormy night were not heeded. My first fortnight's leave after 2 years of war took me in trepidation to Galway. My second-2 years later-in a daze to Westminster Cathedral and thence to the top of the world above Lodore, after which I studied the problem from a fresh angle. The next four years were generous as regards leave and gave us interludes of married life ashore, while my jobs-K.16, Admiralty and then M.l led to promotion to captain in June, 1922. But not till we boarded a P. and 0 . at Millwall in February, 1923, had I seen more than the briefest glimpse of my wife in a ship. At Singapore, in the Raffles bar, I was introduced to a million dollar cocktail and local nabobs. T o my surprise the name of the ship I was bound for, was greeted with shouts of laughter-'Oh. The Warship' with an emphasis deriding more than her lack of guns. I was not amused. My host explained she was in the news recently, towed into Hong Kong after breaking down on the way to Manila for an entente with the U.S. Navy, carrying a bevy of naval ladies. On reaching Hong Kong, I found my predecessor had organised a model turnover-past records, future programmes cut and dried--everything on a plate for me. Within 24 hours I was alone on the promenade deck outside my spacious captain's cabin, watching him being pulled to his P. and 0. by an officers cutter's crew, escorted by all hands in sampans, cheering and letting off crackers. Only when the crackers started a fire in the deserted ship, did I discover drawbacks. This slight anti-climax led me to brass tacks with the first lieutenant. From him and from my coxswain I learned the reverse side of the rosy picture of the flotilla and my parent ship. Nine submarines out of 12, out of action in dockyard hands, sounded to me more serious than grievances arising from ladies as passengers. But the latter were real enough. The Titania was an ex-passenger ship, whose promenade deck forward, the inevitable gallery for passengers, looked straight down on the well deck and foc'sle, where the crew took their ease, washed clothes, smoked and sunbathed. The Titania was lying alongside the dockyard and at 0750 Vice-Admiral Sir Arthur Leveson walked up her gangway. I just reached the inboard end before he did. I'd not met him but had heard lots about 'Levi' as he was known to all and sundry. The nickname was not used disrespectfully, rather with awe sometimes tinged with affection. Usually followed by 'He's a holy terror' and a tale of the latest forceful and original stunt serving his purpose. An old friend, C. V. Robinson, Levi's right hand man at Singapore, and an admirer, had told me 'He puts his head down a11d charges like the Bull of Bashan-Don't get out in front'. Possibly disappointed of catching me ashore or unshaven, he looked heavily disapproving, and delivered a quick right and left. 'I came to warn you that I want .you to come with me in Ambrose to Singapore'. This was rather a bombshell, at first sight unfair to my Comdr(S), and highly inconvenient for me. Ambrose was due to sail in a few days with 3 L. Class submarines for hot weather patrol tests. Then, 'I want you on board Hawkins at eleven to discuss my scheme for making fuller use of Titania. No ceremonial calls'. At eleven the Admiral opened unceremoniously-'Your Titania and Ambrose have empty spare cabins, and others occupied by submarine officers away in their boats. My Hawkins is overcrowded. I want cabins allotted to my Engineer Captain and others of my staffy--This sounded reasonable, though each ship, mothering 6 submarines, had on occasion to fend for 9, and cabins were a problem needing a margin. Brushing aside my feeble protests Levi went quickly to the heart of his scheme, evidently dear to his own. He spoke emotionally of the lot of naval wives, and his wish to encourage officers to marry and to have their wives with them. He shook a fierce finger at me, apparently taking me for a bachelor (or perhaps a gay grass widower) 'I want the Titania to take all the wives she can carry up to Wei-Hai-Wei in April, and down again to Hong Kong in October'. A year later I could find something to be said for the idea, and today perhaps more, but at the moment it struck me as outrageous. I could find nothing helpful to say, and no doubt looked mulish. I was shouted at until goaded to a retort, probably incoherent, to the effect that I had no wish to command a ship already a laughing stock on the station, known by a nasty nickname. This was a body blow, how foul and how effective I did not then know. If I'd had any inkling that his wife and daughters had been passengers for Manila, I could not have used it. Luckily for my case, and for our future relations, my ignorance of the background to his proposal was profound, and my innocence of malice transparent. I didn't even know his family were in Hong Kong, still less that they could be chief among the intended passengers. In the ensuing pause, I played my only trump, saying 'When (as ordered), I submit details to implement the scheme, I must record a protest, and in my monthly report to Rear Admiral (S) inform him that I have protested against the proposal as detrimental to the efficiency of the flotilla'. This monthly report, sent 'through C-in-C' already a red rag to him, revived the stricken bull and I was tossed out of his cabin, unsure that I was not under arrest. Back in my ship, a queue was waiting with more immediate if easier problems, towards its end a message from my wife. She was handily housed by the helpful captain of the dockyard, and warned me not to be too late since Lady Leveson had bidden us to dine 'at short notice-no ceremony' having just heard of her arrival. Feminine influence, not to be denied ashore, had entered the arena. At Admiralty House, Lady Leveson, if she had heard any hint of my being an obstructive misogynist, gave no sign of it. Starting a friendship that became close and lasting, she christened my wife Pat, almost at sight. Levi waistiff with me, charming to my wife. Pat, never conscious of stripes, got on famously with him from the start, and later when they had lively differences, always won in the end. The passenger plan died quietly, and the subject was tabu thereafter. I felt no pride in victory, and unlike Pat, lost most of my subsequent skirmishes with Levi. He came on board again, a day or two later-'You needn't come to Singapore with me, I didn't know your wife had come out'. A handsome amende, but I was glad to be able to say 'Thank you, Sir, but I've fixed everything up and want to go'. I stuck to it and did not regret, but it was hard on Pat, to be left in the air, so soon after arrival. Paper and dockyard work piled up at Hong Kong, but I was able to learn for myself that submarines could patrol in the tropics, and also to hear a good deal of Levi's interesting views on a variety of subjects. Before leaving in Ambrose I took the Titania out for the day, to learn how the single screwed old tub handled, and to practice the skeleton crew at seagoing evolutions. The Paymaster Commander came in the day before and said rather perfunctorily 'Request permission for wives to come out siry. Evidently a routine request, but new to me. Knowing that all the sailors especially myself, would be exposing their ignorance and lack of practice by every sort of muddle, the thought of a gallery was unwelcome and my reply unsympathetic. In the Ambrose at Singapore, I can only remember one lady on board and she was on a chain. It was very hot and a mattress on the quarter deck was my choice for the night. The attractive little Malayan bear had hers the other side, and in spite of a look at the length of the chain, and the strength of the stanchion it was made fast to, 1had an uneasy night. Of a friendly disposition and foiled in her first approach, every time she woke she tried again and charged towards me till brought down with a thump. She confirmed my instinct for apartheid at sea. For submarine officers life on the China Station in 1923 was, especially at Wei-Hai, a happy blend of work and play. A delightful climate, just evading being monotonously fine, a perfect exercising area outside, good games facilities, even a little shooting, if nothing to what old China hands remembered. Plenty to do, but nobody overworked except the Captain (S). Yet one of my bachelor C.O.'s got engaged and his wedding led to the incident, the subject of my next cautionary tale. The autumn exodus had begun, and the Titania on her way down to Hong Kong, was to pause for the event at Foochow, where the bride's father was the 'Big Noisey-Head of the Customs. The Petersfield, the C-in-C's yacht, with Levi's ladies plus Pat, commandeered as spare chaperone, left Shanghai for Foochow a day or two later. The weather turned nasty, and after dark I was ordered to turn back and rendezvous with Petersfield off Chusan. The yacht was unpleasantly lively, Lady Leveson ill, and Titania must embark her. I nosed into an unlit tideswept anchorage where the Petersfield had found a measure of shelter, and, thankful for her guidance, anchored 200 yards from her. It was near slack water with a strong wind and nasty lop, and I sent over the first lieutenant in charge of the whaler. She came back emity. At the PetersJieldYsshort ladder, the rise and fall was steep and the jump required agility and right timing. Woolrych handled the boat well, Pat had confidence in him, and to show it feasible, jumped safely at his word, but only proved it far from easy. Lady Leveson, not at her strongest after severe seasickness, sensibly refrained. The Petersjield's captain proposed coming alongside Titania and our steadiness encouraged me to agree. Meanwhile the tide turned swinging us across wind, and when the Petersjield arrived, she was as lively as the whaler had been. The Titania's promenade deck was a little below the level of Petersjield's boat deck. She began to roll, causing damage to boats and upper works, gang planks were impossible, speed vital with the rolling getting worse. The head room above the solid 4ft. rail was five feet, and the gap through which the jump must be made rose and fell two feet above and below take-off. The background was pure Hollywood, splintering sounds, pitch darkness and rain, lit by the signalmen's flashing lamps. Lady Leveson, angry with herself for failing the whaler, wafted up and down a few feet from me, waited for a far more dangerous leap. I shouted 'Not till I say "Go" and stretch out my arms'. After some rather long waits, the right lull came and she dived across the gap, myself underneath breaking her fall. It was not a ceremonious entry. Picking ourselves up in sudden darkness, as the lamps turned aside, we both burst out laughing after our moments of tension. It was a gallant and lucky leap. If I'd had a little longer to look at the chances of decapitation as the Petersjield rubbed upwards at her closest, or being crushed if we had fallen between as she rolled away, and realised my responsibility, I must have shouted 'No'. Fortunately it was a hustle and I did not think nor Lady Leveson hesitate. She was soon in bed in my cabin, rocked gently in the bigger ship. Her amah did not follow her, but some baggage must have-the Chinese always rise to the occasion. My 'boys' were delighted at the chance of serving 'No. 1 Missie' in 'top fashion'. We had about 300 miles to go to reach Foochow a day and a half later, and delivered our guest restored and looking her best for the wedding. She indeed looked young to be the mother of two equally decorative daughters, notably adorning a cheerful naval occasion. A further example of the mishaps that seem to attend ladies' visits, occurred the following summer. The captain of the Marazion, our target ship, was nearing the end of his time and so was I. Neither of the wives of two submarine veterans had ever seen submarines attack, so I asked the Admiral's permission for them to come out in the Marazion for the day, a 5 or 6 hour trip. There is normally very little to see, since being hit by the torpedo should be the first hint of a submarine's presence to the target ship. With expert help one may catch a momentary glimpse of the 'feather' made by a periscope 700 yards away, and see the track of the torpedo after it has passed under the target. The day was fine, the submarine C.O.'s skilled and everyone enjoyed themselves, but the torpedoes which are the central feature, were temperamental. They were set to run 20 feet deep and to surface at 1,600 yards or perhaps less. The first attack was at long range, and the torpedo did not shut off properly on surfacing. Picking up from a dinghy is an evolution, with all concerned trying to cut seconds off the time. Each time the dinghy touched the torpedo, it started off afresh, running slowly in circles for a few yards and shutting off again. For the men in the boat-infuriating. For the spectators in the Marazion, a Lupino Lane sketch which the ladies thought brilliant. The next attack provided more comedy, but one that threatened me with heart failure. The Marazion was an oldish ship with thin hull plating, distinctly vulnerable to a heavy torpedo at 40 knots, for all its collision head. The attack was good, nobody sighted the periscope, the first 39= NAVAL AFFAIRS shout was 'Red 70' for a splash just before the beam 600 yards away or more. It was the torpedo well aimed, breaking surface in a series of leaps. The ladies were not on the bridge and I remember running aft at full speed, while the captain shouted 'Full ahead, Hard a'starboard!' I reached the quarterdeck in time to see the torpedo leap over it at high speed. The first lieutenant was snatching a snooze in a deck chair, waiting for the second attack, and it cleared him by about 2 feet, actually a bit abaft him, between him and the ensign staff. I'd been really scared, fearing Pat might have gone down to the wardroom, but the scene turned quickly to farce. A tubby choleric li.ttle man rudely woken by a 1924 doodle bug missing him by a few feet, upset by the helm going hard over, and nobody to vent his wrath upon. The damage could have been serious, and it was distinctly lucky for Marazion that the torpedo was at one of the highest peaks of its switchback course. The list of shocks that a susceptible sailor can suffer if he allows sirens to add spice to ship life, grows too long. I must look for the moral. The fact is that a ship is a jealous mistress. Mistresses seldom run smoothly in double harness with wives. Even Nelson couldn't manage it. Fanny could not match his fighting spirit. Emma aboard the Vanguard in a gale, proved hers, but ashore was a millstone. The Wrens, whose advent was opposed by many of my generation, converted us all, and braced the crews of every ship they joined. From the little I know of the Navy today, I believe that wives can more often and easily 'belong' in their husband's ships than in my day. They know more of the ships and each other, and if mishaps still pursue them they are well worth risking. 'SEA GEE' Naval Affairs FIRST NAVAL FLYERS. The 1961 Farnborough Air Display had a special significance for the Fleet Air Arm. Although it is not till next year that we mark the Golden Jubilee of the official foundation of the Naval Wing of the Royal Flying Corps-shortly afterwards to be known as the Royal Naval Air Service1911 saw in fact the early beginnings of aviation in the Royal Navy; the first selection of a small body of officers to undertake an approved course of training as pilots. I n March of that year, out of some 200 volunteers, four officers were chosen to take advantage of an offer of training at the Royal Aero Club's aerodrome at Eastchurch in the Isle of Sheppey. One member of the Club had offered to lend two Farman machines, and another to instruct. The four officers selected-all, be it noted, from sea-were Lieutenants R. Gregory, R.N., of H.M.S. Antrim, A. M. Longmore, R.N., of H.M. Torpedo Boat 24, C. R. Samson, R.N., of H.M.S. Foresight, and D. Wildman-Lushington, Royal Marine Artillery, of H.M.S. Bulwark. The latter fell sick and was not able to join the course till later on; his place, however, was at once taken by Lieutenant E. L. Gerrard, Royal Marine Light Infantry, of H.M.S. Hermione. All five qualified after six weeks' instruction and eventually the Admiralty was persuaded to buy the two machines and to send twelve ratings to form the nucleus of a flying school. Additional aircraft, consisting of one Bleriot monoplane and two Short twin-engined biplanes, were added to the establishment. From the start, attention was given to the problem of operating with and from ships of the fleet, and in December, 1911, Lieutenant Samson, in a Short biplane, took off from a landing platform built on the forecastle of H.M.S. Africa, at anchor at Chatham. He made a safe descent alongside, using flotation bags lashed to the wheels. These men were the Fleet Air Arm's pioneers and their efforts should inspire us towards the continued ideal of an effective and well-equipped Fleet Air Arm. Their successors, who represent NAVAL AFFAIRS 393 the Royal Navy at this year's Farnborough Show, with their Scimitars and Sea Vixens, will be demonstrating not only their own prowess and the skill of the designers and manufacturers, but the vision of those First Few. IMPROVED EQUIPMENT The first front-line Squadron of the Fleet Air Arm to be equipped with the new gas-turbineengined Wessex helicopter commissioned at Culdrose on July 4th. The greater space and lifting capacity of the Wessex will obviously have an important bearing on Commando operations of the future, each machine being able to carry some fifteen men as against the five at present carried by the Whirlwind. When it is a question of anti-submarine operations, the Wessex will be a 'single package' machine, able to carry both detection equipment and the weapon for killing the submarine, instead of these having to be carried in separate aircraft. As for tradition, the new machines will be in safe hands. Squadron 815 has a proud history which includes such famous occasions as the attack at Taranto and the battle of Cape Matapan, in both of which actions its legendary Swordfish aircraft achieved considerable success. ROYAL MARINE HELICOPTER PILOTS. In future the Royal Marines will select officers to fly some of the helicopters in the Commando carriers, H.M.S. Bulwark and H.M.S. Albion. At present all the Commando helicopters are flown by Royal Naval pilots. Selected officers will have twelve months' flying training followed by two years in a Commando Helicopter Squadron. This will be followed by two years' regimental duties and a further two years with a Commando Squadron before returning to general Royal Marine service. Royal Marines already train cliff assault specialists, 'frogmen', canoeists, parachutists and signals personnel for service on, under and over the sea throughout the world in H.M. ships and R.M. Commando units. ROYAL MARINES COMMEMORATE 200-YEAR-OLD BATTLE Royal Marine buglers in units of the Corps serving all over the world sounded a fanfare on June 7th, to commemorate the 200th anniversary of the capture of Belle Isle-a battle which earned for the Royal Marines the right to adopt the laurel wreath for their famous globe and laurel cap badge. It was on June 7th, 1761, during the Seven Years War, that the Royal Marines finally captured the citadel and port of Palais, the capital town of Belle Isle off the south-east coast of Brittany. THE N.A.T.O. DEFENCE COLLEGE: TENTH ANNIVERSARY The Annual Conference of the N.A.T.O. Defence College was held in Paris on June 15th-17th, 1961, and coincided with the tenth anniversary celebrations of the founding of the College. Earl Attlee gave an address. The College owes its origin to the early days of N.A.T.O. when the first Supreme Allied Commander Europe, General Eisenhower, was confronted with the vroblem of finding - suitably trained staff to fillfill&eposts in the N.A.T:O. organisation. His proposal to form a Defence College to fulfil this function was agreed by the Standing Group and the French Government set aside part of the historic Ecole Militaire in Paris, facing the Champ de Mars and Eiffel Tower, to house the College. The first course began in November, 1951, and the nineteenth course is now in progress (August, 1961). Each course lasts about six months, and consists of some sixty students, of which threequarters are naval, army and air force officers of the rapk of Colonel or equivalent, the remainder being officials from Government departments concerned with defence and foreign affairs; on the eighteenth course thirteen of the fifteen N.A.T.O. countries were represented, the exceptions being Iceland and Luxembourg. The programme of each course includes lectures, discussions, work on problems in syndicates, instructional tours to N.A.T.O. countries in Europe, and language instruction. The College has an extensive library. Lecturers have included some of the most important personalities in N.A.T.0.-Mr. Spaak, Lord Ismay, Mr. van Kleffens, General Beauffre, Field-Marshal Lord Montgomery, General Speidel, Admiral Denny, M. Schumann, General Kuter, Admiral Dennison, Mr. Omsby-Gore, General Norstad and Admiral of the Fleet Lord Mountbatten are examples. All students must have a reasonable knowledge of either French or English, the two official languages of N.A.T.O. All the work of the College is carried out in these languages-lectures and discussions being interpreted into English or French, as necessary, simultaneously. Language 394 NAVAL AFFAIRS instruction is compulsory except for those who are fluent in both languages-if French or English happens t o be the mother tongue, study of the other language has to be undertaken. The first Commandant of the College was Admiral Lemonnier of France, who was succeeded by Air Marshal Sir Lawrence Darvall of Great Britain, Lieut.-General Byers of the United States Army, Lieut.-General de Renzi of the Italian Army, Major-General Estcourt of Great Britain, and Lieut.-General Ariburum of the Turkish Air Force. The present Commandant is Lieut.-General 0. Harteon of the Belgian Army, who is assisted by an international directing staff of one civil and three military deputies, and twelve 'faculty advisers'. The College provides unique opportunities for the free exchange of ideas and experiences, unfettered by local or national interests. Students discover how to work together on an international basis, learning to listen to and understand the other person's point of view. No other military college can offer a comparable experience. T o perpetuate the associations formed during their courses, graduates from the College, known by the French word 'Anciens', have formed 'N.A.T.O. Defence College Associations' in their own countries. These Associations keep in touch with each other through the College: the annual conference held this summer at the College was attended by as many 'Anciens' as could get together in Paris to renew old acquaintances. The following 'breakdown' of officers who attended the first eighteen courses has been prepared from the unofficial records of the United Kingdom N.A.T.O. Defence College Association. I t includes officers who have served on the College Staff as well as students; ranks are those now held:Royal hTavy-27, including 2 Rear-Admirals, 1 Commodore, 1 Brigadier, R.M., 9 Captains, 10 Commanders. Army-40, including 1 Major-General, 18 Brigadiers, 17 Colonels, 3 Lieut.-Colonels. Royal Air Force-36, including 1 Air Marshal, 1 Air Vice-Marshal, 1 Air Commodore, 14 Group Captains, 18 Wing Commanders. Civil-32, including 12 Foreign Office, 6 Ministry of Aviation, 5 War Office, 2 Board of Trade, 1 Ministry of Supply, 1 Treasury, 1 Home Office, 1 Ministry of Transport. VICKERS HOVERCRAFT (See 'Dreamboats', NAVAL REVIEW, October, 1959) A new transport concept is in being and Vickers-Armstrongs (South Marston) Limited, in conjunction with Hovercraft Development Limited, are in the process of projecting, designing and constructing several sizes of Hovercraft. The basic design of the first generation of these vehicles comprises a primary structure in the form of a stiff platform, taking the distributed pressure of the air cushion on the bottom surface. Fan lift engines, and distribution ducts for the peripheral jet are mourned on this platform, with the remaining area providing accommodation for passenger cabins and/or cargo holds. Controls are provided to stabilize the craft in heave, pitch and roll, and to counteract the effects of side loads and yawing movements. Model tests have been made, over water, ground and in the wind tunnel, to determine the aerodynamic behaviour and ground interference effects. T o follow up these tests a research Hovercraft VA-1 was built. VA- 1 The design principles outlined above were incorporated in the research vehicle, which was fitted with bare essentials only for the first overland tests. I n this condition it first became operational in 1960 at weight of 3,300 lb. and a hoverheight of 4.5 inches. I t has been operated continuously since that time, with various modifications including several different lift curtain systems. Stability devices, such as compartmentation of the cushion and associated controls, have also been developed. Various fairings and a cabin have now been added as protection for over-water trials. These modifications increase the weight to 3,500 lb. and the hoverheight is now 4-1 inches. I t is recognised, at this state in Hovercraft development, that practical demonstration, particularly overseas, is essential with such a new type of vehicle. The difficulties attendant on transporting a large Hovercraft to distant trials have prompted the Company to construct a vehicle small enough to be air-freighted to demonstration sites and sufficiently developed to prove the engineering design and the practicability of application. VA-2 T h e Company is therefore building the small craft designated VA-2. This is a utility vehicle, carrying four or five people, with a speed of 40 knots and an endurance of 1&hours. I n addition to demonstrations in remote parts of the world and route assessments for prospective Hovercraft operators, the craft has immediate applications as a fast executive transport over sheltered and inland waters and for the transport of personnel and equipment over difficult terrain where existing types of vehicles cannot operate. NAVAL AFFAIRS 395 To provide the required width for loading into current British transport aircraft, three sections on either side of the main structure are made readily detachable. T o provide height clearance for loading, the two fin and rudder assemblies and complete propulsion units with support struts, are made as detachable units. These units permit rapid re-assembly, with a minimum of adjustments, to make the craft operational on remote demonstration sites. The vehicle is powered by three light aircraft piston engines, two for lift and one for propulsion, and the hoverheight over a solid surface is 8.5 inches. Overall dimensions of the assembled craft: length, 28ft. 4in.; breadth, 14ft. loin.; height, loft. 4in. VA-3 The next craft, VA-3, is already under construction. This is a 10-ton vehicle and at this size a useful load can be carried. In the role of fast passenger ferry or personnel transport, it can operate in river estuaries and similar terrain where its amphibious capabilities allow it to operate over water with waves up to 2 feet, and over shoals and mudbanks. I n this role the cabin is fitted to accommodate twenty-four passengers and crew. For survey, exploration or patrol, the craft can be fitted with a cargo area and could then carry some 4,000 lb. of equipment plus crew for 80 nautical miles at high speed. The structure design follows the same principles as already outlined, and a similar lift system is employed. Four Blackburn Turmo-turbine engines are specified for the lift fans and propulsion drives, but the design is sufficiently flexible to permit the use of alternative power units. For the propulsion system, two reversible, variable pitch, four-bladed propellers are used. The pitch change provides reverse thrust which is used for braking the craft and to aid manoeuvrability. In addition to the directional control provided by the propulsion system, cable-operated control surfaces on the port and starboard coamings provide effective 'keel' area to prevent drift and to assist in turning. The overall dimensions of the assembled craft are: length, 52ft. 6in.; breadth, 25ft. Oin.; height, 17ft. gin. Future Projects A great deal of advanced scheming has been done at South Marston on Hovercraft of the deep sea-going type. For the type of seas likely to be encountered on unprotected waters Hovercraft sizes from 100 to 1,000 tons should be considered. Such sizes are dictated by two factors. First, for open water operation all through the year, the wave conditions require larger craft with greater hover-height. This is to keep the structural loads and power requirements to reasonable values. The second factor, which derives from the relationship of cushion area to perimeter, leads to improved economy of operation, in terms of ton miles per horse-power installed. This is due to the relative saving in power and the greater disposable load in the larger craft. Thus the larger ranges required for open sea journeys become economic in terms of fuel to payload ratio. For operation closer to the surface, both overland and over waves, the development of flexible structures is receiving attention. The structure of a Hovercraft is largely dictated by the impact loads. In the first designs, adequate clearance was provided by having higher powered lift systems, since the structural penalties in designing for greater impact are prohibitive. By introducing flexible skirts the major design limitations are overcome. Local impacts and abrasion is not borne by the main structures, but by the flexible components. These can be designed to accept high accelerations, and thus the accelerations and loads transferred to the main structure can be greatly reduced. The projected developments described are a long way off in terms of engineering. Although flexibility in its simplest form is already being tried in the form of rubber sidewalls or skirts, the ultimate servo-actuated mechanical device may take 10 years. A similar time scale is likely for the large sea-going craft, and with its great capacity for work its application to progressively widening markets is foreseen. However, an economic size short haul passenger car ferry is considered much nearer attainment and Vickers are working on a number of such projects. Large Ferry Craft VA-4 An early scheme for a craft of around 100 tons has been projected as type VA-4. This craft, with a hoverheight of up to 3 feet and capable of speeds between 70 and 80 knots, can be an economic proposition. The dimensions of type VA-4 are: length, 173 feet; beam, 58 feet; equipped weight, 61 tons; - -fuel and payload, 49 tons. A number of features may be changed for particular requirements, but at the moment the craft is designed to operate a frequent, high speed service to off-shore islands in more sheltered seas and channels. To improve manoeuvrability in restricted waterways the propulsion engines are mounted amidships and given mechanical means of deflecting thrust. The bows and sidewalls and the configuration of air cushion are suited to the expected waves, floating debris or solid obstacles likely to be encountered. Emphasis on ferrying cars or other cargo and speed of 396 NAVAL AFFAIRS turn-around will govern the design of doors and hatches. Side versus end loading for the hold is another operational feature to be evaluated. Vickers and the Future of Hovercraft T h e essential concept will be exploited; that of a truly amphibious vehicle with a high overwater speed. Shore installations will be kept to a minimum for on-and-off loadmg. Whilst navigation aids will be essential these may be integrated with existing radiolradar facilities being provided in busy waterways for conventional craft. I n parallel with the engineering developments described, it will be essential for what may be termed political developments to keep pace. The transport licensing departments and port authorities must agree on requirements which will ensure the safety of passengers and crew and regulate traffic between various users of waterways, without penalising the new capabilities of this class of vehicle. One must avoid this 'man with a warning flag' type of restriction which has accompanied the introduction of new forms of transport in the past. Air traffic and the growing volume of motorists already have forced more realistic customs procedures in international travel. T o realise the potential of Hovercraft transport, these precedents must be followed. T h e engineering problems are thus being solved and, if free of artificial restrictions, the Hovercraft may have a great impact in the next 5 or 10 years, first, in meeting the growing demands of the tourist market and, then, by adding a stimulus to international travel and trade. HOME ADMIRALTY OFFICE CHANGES A number of Admiralty departments in the London area and at Bath are to be moved to new locations within the next eighteen months. Some 3,000 Admiralty employees and serving naval personnel are involved. A new office block being erected at Earls Court and to be known as the Empress State Building will accommodate most of the Admiralty staff at present housed in Queen Anne's Mansions and at Northwood Hills, Pinner-both of which will be vacated by the Admiralty-and other staff will go to the existing Admiralty accommodation in Whitehall and Rex House, Lower Regent Street. At Bath a number of departments will be re-accommodated at Warminster Road and Foxhill, and branches of two departments at present at Admiralty Main Building, Whitehall, and Northwood Hills, Pinner, will move to Ensleigh, Bath, about June next year. The general aims of these accommodation changes are twofold. I n London they will improve the concentration of departments i n more suitable offices, and in Bath will concentrate the Weapons Department in one locality (as recommended by the Select Committee on Estimates) and assist the amalgamation of Naval Accounts departments into one organisation. FUTURE O F R.N. BARRACKS, DEVONPORT I n order to ensure that the uniformed manpower of the Navy is kept deployed to the best effect the tasks and complements of shore establishments are regularly reviewed. Such a review has recently been completed at the Royal Naval Barracks, Devonport. The centralised drafting system inaugurated four years ago has proved most effective in reducing the number of men previously held there i n transit or awaiting draft. Other developments have made possible the re-allocation of certain training tasks. This will lead to a further reduction in the number of men borne in barracks. The various steps will take effect during the next two years and reductions in administrative services will follow automatically. It is also intended to replace 140 naval ratings by civilians for various maintenance, domestic and administrative services which will still be required. In all, the changes will free some 400 or more naval personnel from shore based jobs at Devonport. The prime tasks of H.M.S. Drake in future will be to serve as an accommodation centre for naval personnel in transit and for certain ships refitting in Devonport Dockyard; and to act as an accounting centre for those ships and establishments of the Plymouth Command which do not carry their own accounts. H.M.S. Drake will still play her part in local municipal affairs, albeit on a somewhat smaller scale. Members of the W.R.N.S. will continue to serve at Devonport and will perform the same tasks as at present but on a somewhat reduced scale. Consideration is being given to the possibility or fmding them accommodation within H.M.S. Drake to enable their present quarters at St. Budeaux to be closed. NAVAL AFFAIRS 397 FREEDOM O F GOSPORT FOR R.N. SUBMARINE BRANCH Gosport-home of the Royal Navy's submarine branch since its formation sixty years agogranted the Freedom of the Borough to Submarine Command at a parade and presentation on July 7th, when famous wartime submariners joined nearly 400 serving members of the Submarine Branch to receive a silver casket containing the Scroll of Freedom. Fort Blockhouse, Gosport, has been the traditional 'home' of the Royal Navy's Submarine Branch since its formation with the launch of the first 'Holland' boat in October, '901. All the history of famous submarine actions, accounts of gallantry by the fourteen Victoria Cross submariners, and the headquarters of Flag Officer, Submarines, are housed in tne seventeenth century defensive fort of Portsmouth. At the ceremony the Mayor of Gosport (Councillor J. F. Fairhall, J.P.) presented the Scroll of Freedom of the Borough to Rear-Admiral A. R. Hezlet, C.B., D.S.O. and Bar, D.S.C. (Flag Officer. Submarines). in the Dresence of Admiral Sir Manlev Power, K.C.B., C.B.E.. D.S.C. and B& (command&-in-chief, Portsmouth), who representid the ~ o a r dof Admiralty. After the presentation ceremony nearly 400 officers and men of the Submarine Branch marched through Gosport with bayonets fixed. On parade for the first time since its presentation was the Queen's Colour of the Submarine Branch, presented by Her Majesty the Queen in 1959. Among others attending the ceremony were Admiral Sir Wilfrid Woods, K.C.B., D.S.C. (Commander-in-Chief, Home Fleet and a former Flag Officer, Submarines), senior local Naval, Army and R.A.F. officers, together with holders of the Victoria Cross, and their relatives. NEW NAVAL HELICOPTER SQUADRON A new Royal Naval Air Squadron commissioned at Portland on July Ilth, with four diRerercnt types of helicopters. I t is 771 Helicopter Training and Trials Squadron, which is the first in the Royal Navy to be specifically commissioned and equipped for a training and trials task. The Squadron is commanded by Lieut.-Commander A. I. R. Shaw, M.B.E., A.F.R.Ae.S., R.N., and equipped with Wessex, Whirlwind, Dragonfly and P.531 helicopters. FRIGATE SQUADRON FOR LONDONDERRY It has been decided to re-establish a squadron of four frigates, operating from Londonderry, to concentrate on the practical training of ships and aircraft and the advanced training of officers in anti-submarine operations; also on the evaluation of modern anti-submarine equipment. H.M.S. Undaunted is already engaged on these tasks at Londonderry and will be joined in the new squadron (the 20th Frigate Squadron) by H.M. Ships Falmourh, Rothesay and Blackwosd. The squadron will be at full strength by early 1962. The ships and men for this commitment will come from adjustments to other types of training and from changes in the planned deployment of some ships. I n particular there will be a reduction in the Dartmouth Training Squadron, from which the two ocean minesweepers, H.M. Ships Jewel and Acute, will be paid off at the end of this summer. The training these two ships now provide would, in any case, have ceased at the end of 1962 and until then will be undertaken in other ships. The four frigates will normally give leave at Londonderry and their ships' companies will be eligible to move their families to that area if they wish. The ships will, however, carry out their refits and intermediate dockings at their base pons, i.e. Devonport, Portsmouth and Rosyth. S P A R T A N S P I R I T SETS O F F ROUND T H E WORLD Mr. A. H. J. Wakefield, a 39-year-old ex-Royal Navy Chief Engine Room Artificer and submariner, and two companions left Bristol with an Admiralty send-off on August 26th to sail round the world the hard way-from west to east in an 18ft. 6in. boat, the smallest ever to attempt the circumnavigation-carrying out experiments for the Royal Navy on the way. With Mr. Wakefield, in his boat Spartan Spirit is 17-year-old Merchant Navy seaman Ian Dunham, and former painter and decorator Tom Cox, aged 20, who saw Mr. Wakefield's newspaper advertisement for a sailing companion nearly six months ago and promptly got on his bicycle to join him. He worked each day until the early hours of the morning at Mr. Wakefield's house in Bristol, helping to complete preparations for the 30,000-mile ocean voyage which will bring the three mariners back to Bristol in September, 1963. When Spartan Spirit left Bristol she was given an official send-off by the Admiralty's Director of Naval Equipment (Captain F. W. Hayden, D.S.C., R.N.) and other Admiralty officials. Admiralty and their contractors have advised during the preparations for the voyage and have loaned and given equipment which includes an inflatable rubber boat, clothing, Solar stills for making fresh water, lifejackets, charts, and distress signals taken by Lieut.-Colonel H . G. Haslar 398 NAVAL AFFAIRS for his single-handed double crossing of the Atlantic last year. It is to be hoped that Mr. Wakefield and his colleagues will have no need to use the signals. Spartan Spirit is of wooden construction to Ian Procter's well-known design, but adapted and built in Mr. Wakefield's garage to suit the special requirements for long ocean sailing. She has a Bermudian rig. The boat is so small that only a very limited amount of food and water can be carried. The water ration will be barely more than that provided in liferafts and it is expected that much useful data on survival is therefore likely to result. The three voyagers will carry out experiments with shark repellents and evaluate various items of equipment for the Royal Naval Life-Saving Committee. MEDITERRANEAN ADMIRALTY HOUSE, VALETTA, VACATED A 140-year-old link between the Royal Navy and Admiralty House in Valetta was broken this month when the Commander-in-Chief, Admiral Sir Deric Holland-Martin, and his family moved to their new official residence, the Villa Portelli in Kalkara, the other side of Grand Harbour. The house, which was built between 1761 and 1763, was leased to the Naval Authorities on January lst, 1821, and has been the official residence of the Commander-in-Chief ever since. Now it is to be returned to the Government of Malta, who intend that it 'be properly maintained and put to a use appropriate to its historic character'. I.N.S. VZKRANT T O WORK UP I N THE MEDITERRANEAN The Indian Navy's first aircraft carrier, the I.N.S. Vikrant, arrived in Malta on August 20th, to begin working up in the Mediterranean. Commanded by Captain P. S. Mahindroo, I.N., the Vikrant has embarked Sea Hawk and French Alize aircraft. The ship started life as H.M.S. Hercules, one of the Colossus class of light fleet carriers, but was never completed. Since 1957 she has been extensively modernised for the I.N. by Harland and Wolf, and is now up-to-date in every respect. She has two sisters in the Commonwealth navies, H.M.A.S. Melbourne (ex-H.M.S. Majestic) and H.M.C.S. Bonaventure (ex-H.M.S. Powerful). FAR EAST KUWAIT If any proof were needed of the Navy's undiminished role in our Defence system, it can be seen in the recent operations at Kuwait. The ability of the Navy to concentrate forces speedily and effectively has seldom been better demonstrated and it is hoped that the lesson has not been lost, not only on those responsible for the higher direction of affairs, but on the great mass of the public on whom ultimately the support of the Navy depends. In the words of the 'Daily Express' leader, 'If anybody thinks that the day of the navies is over, Kuwait should make him change his opinion. For this police operation has been launched mainly by means of a sea-lift'. Background The recently concluded defence agreement between the Ruler of Kuwait and H.M. Government and the announcement of Kuwait's intention to apply for membership of the United Nations, were used by General Kassem as the occasion to announce his intention of annexing this small but wealthy oil sheikdom, which produces about 40 per cent of our oil. This called for immediate steps on our part to alert the necessary forces and to make preparations for giving military assistance to the Ruler should he require it. This proved in fact to be the case. On June 30th the Ruler of Kuwait asked H.M. Government for British forces to enter Kuwait and the Commander-in-Chief, Middle East was instructed to begin landing on July 1st. The Naval Build-up Already at Bahrein on June 27th were H.M.S. Loch Alvie and the Amphibious Warfare Squadron, H.M.S. Striker having half a squadron of Centurion tanks embarked, which she was due to exchange with those carried in the Army's landing ship Empire Gull. In dock at Karachi was H.M.S. Loch Fyne, whilst H.M.S. Loch Ruthven was at Mombasa. H.M.S. Bulwark, with No. 42 Commando embarked, was about to visit Karachi before proceeding to the Persian Gulf for hot weather trials. She was thereupon sailed from Karachi with all dispatch in order to arrive at Bahrein on July lst, while the Loch Ruthven sailed from NAVAL AFFAIRS 399 Mombasa for the Persian Gulf. The Loch Fyne was ordered to cut short her docking and selfmaintenance and, with the assistance of the Pakistan Navy, succeeded in sailing from Karachi on July lst, ten days ahead of schedule. From Far East Meanwhile, the aircraft carrier Victorious, with the destroyer Cassandra and the frigate Lincoln in company, were approaching Hong Kong. These were turned round and routed to the Persian Gulf at 22 knots. Towards the end of the voyage the Cassandra was sent on ahead and thus became the first ship from the Far East to enter the Persian Gulf. H.M. Ships Yarmouth and Llandaff were sailed from Hong Kong to join the Victorious, and her replenishment group were ordered to follow up. Certain other dispositions of R.F.A.s were made. From Other Stations H.M.S. Centaur, accompanied by the destroyers Solebay, Finisterre and Camperdown and the R.F.A. Olna, were sailed from Gibraltar, passing through the Suez Canal without incident on the night of July 5th. H.M.S. Loch Znsh, with two minesweepers (H.M. Ships Ashton and Rodington) and H.M.S. Messina, followed three days later. The mining threat could not be ignored and it was decided to sail 108th Minesweeping Squadron from the Mediterranean. T o provide an extra minesweeper, one was brought forward from the reserve squadron at Aden and a separate crew flown out from the United Kingdom. Commandos in 'First Wave' The fact that the Bulwark was so readily available enabled 42 Commando to be put ashore in Kuwait inside twenty-four hours of the Ruler's request for help. T h e following day 45 Commando was flown up from Aden, so the Commandos were properly i n the 'first wave'. This was particularly valuable because of difficulties which hampered flying in reinforcements from outside the theatre. The build-up to a balanced force of approximately 5,700 men was completed in nine days and was considered a very satisfactory achievement i n the circumstances. Headquarters Ship The duties of headquarters ship and communications link with the land forces was carried out throughout the operation by H.M.S. Meon. The Popular 'Bulwark' The air-conditioned facilities in H.M.S. Bulwark added much to her popularity, and some 200 men daily were sent on board for a clean-up and rest. The ship also acted as the early warning radar guard. H.M.S. Victorious and Control in the Air A noteworthy feature of the operation was that H.M.S. Victorious assumed full air defence responsibility on arrival in the Gulf, controlling both her own aircraft and the R.A.F. Hunters from Kuwait airfield. This was the first occasion that type 984 radar equipment has been used operationally. The Rundown Certain naval units, after operating in support of Kuwait for three weeks in the world's hottest sea, were soon withdrawn to cooler waters. The first to leave was the destroyer Cassandra, which had been at sea continuously for eight weeks. Soon after the carrier Victorious and her escorts Lincoln, Yarmouth, Finisterre and Loch Fyne left. Most of the early arrivals were from the Far East and were replaced by ships drawn from the Mediterranean and Home Stations. Far East ships steamed 4,500 miles to get to the Persian Gulf and Victorious won the distance championship with 12,000 logged in the operation. Fuelling, feeding and storing this force amounting to 3,500 sailors was the job of the underway replenishment ships, the R.F.A.s Tidereach, Reliant and Resurgent, who had to provide over 600 tons of fuel, stores and provisions for each day of the operation. Living Conditions Climatic conditions made life in all ships unpleasant, despite air conditioning, which was vital in operating delicate electronic equipment on board. Living and sleeping quarters averaged 95 to 100 degrees F. and machinery spaces up to 130 degrees F. T h e high humidity, over 90 per cent soon after sunrise, completed the heat discomfort. Even at night little respite was gained due to the high sea-water temperatures and effect of the sun beating down on steel decks all day. Everyone rose to the challenge of these unpleasant conditions and morale was high and health good. Much ingenuity was shown in alleviating these hardships, ships' routines were adjusted so that work was done i n the cool dawn periods. Thirst quenching barrels of iced water and lime juice were strategically placed. Formality in dress was relaxed and men went near naked about their work. Salt water showers and canvas baths were rigged on the upper deck so that men could refresh themselves without wasting fresh water. Other factors which supported morale were the regular airmail deliveries three to five days only from home, ample film supplies, opportunities for impromptu sport such as volley ball, tug-of-war, deck hockey, rifle shooting. 400 NAVAL AFFAIRS It was not a spectacular job but ships have been busy. Victorious kept her aircraft in flying practice day and night, ready to support the force ashore in Kuwait at any moment should Kassem decide to invade the Sheikdom of Kuwait. The Small Ships The small ships, the maids-of-all-work, were ceaselessly active, guarding the carrier, carrying despatches, stores and mail, protecting the approaches to Kuwait, searching dhows and preparing to support with naval gunfire their comrades in arms ashore. As a practical demonstration of the Navy's versatility and mobility there is no doubt that this operation has been a great success. T H E COMMANDOS AT KUWAIT The following is an account of the successful deployment of Royal Marines Commandos in conditions where the temperature reached 124 degrees and incessant sandstorms reduced visibility to 200-500 yards. In such conditions, with the thermometer never dropping below 90 degrees even in the early morning, the Commandos dug slit trenches when they were flown ashore from the Commando carrier, H.M.S. Bulwark. They were the first troops to arrive; they at once secured the Kuwait airfield and water distillation plant, then proceeded to dig themselves in in a key position on a dominating ridge. For the first few days circumstances were specially severe. A relentless wind whipped up the sand and men suffered from sore eyes and parched lips. Despite this, cases of heat exhaustion were few and the majority were able to resume work after a few hours rest. No. 42 Commando (Lieut.-Colonel E. R. Bridges), which was embarked in the carrier, was able to take up positions and hold them for forty-eight hours before other effective forces were available. They were put ashore, supplied and supported by the helicopters of No. 848 Squadron of the Fleet Air Arm and were fully equipped and in fighting order well before communications were established by road. Later, with bivouacs and camouflage nets providing the only shade from the gruelling sun, the helicopters of the Bulwark were welcomed as 'flying angels' bringing ice, fruit and other commodities to relieve the stress of heat and to supplement food packs. The Bulwark herself, with air conditioning which kept the temperature below decks at an even 82 degrees, was an equable haven of comfort for men-Royal Marines and Army personneltemporarily sent back from their arduous desert positions. The ship also proved invaluable to No. 45 Commando (Lieut.-Colonel L. G. Marsh, M.C.), flown in from Aden in support of 42 Commando the following day. No. 42 Commando continued to fulfil its traditional role of holding ground until it was relieved in the forward position by an Army battalion. The Commando was then withdrawn into reserve to a position from which full advantage could be taken of its special helicopter-borne manoeuvreability. No. 45 Commando remained deployed in defensive positions until, with 42 Commando and the Bulwark, they were withdrawn from Kuwait. I n this, the first operation in which a Commando carrier has been employed, the ability of the Navy to concentrate forces speedily, unobtrusively and effectively has been amply demonstrated. I t is felt that the value of the Commando ship concept has been fully confirmed. Powerful land forces, fully equipped, were made available at short notice where they were required. AUSTRALIA R.A.N. FIFTY YEARS OLD The Royal Australian Navy celebrated its fiftieth birthday recently. It was on July loth, 1911, that a signature by King George V transformed the Australian Naval Forces into the 'Royal Australian Navy'. Throughout Australia and overseas, the men of the Royal Australian Navy celebrated the fiftieth anniversary of their Service. All ships 'spliced the mainbrace', and there were special activities at naval establishments ashore. The Duke of Edinburgh, who is an Admiral of the Fleet in the R.A.N., sent a special congratulatory message: 'In half a century the Royal Australian Navy has gained distinctions out of all proportion to its years. I n two world wars and during the Korean war its ships and men won an enviable reputation for gallantry and seamanship. This is a particular source of pride and happiness to the Royal Navy which was so intimately involved in the development of the Royal Australian Navy in its early days'. NAVAL AFFAIRS 401 'For me this is more than a formal occasion. There were Australian cadets in my term when I joined the Navy. I served alongside Australians in many parts of the world and in Australian waters d y i n g the last war, and I have seen something of the present day Navy in visits to Australia. The following exchange of signals took place between Admiralty and the Australian Commonwealth Naval Board:From Admiralty to A.C.N.B. The Board of Admiralty, the Royal Navy and the Royal Marines send to the Naval Board and the Officers and Men of the Roval Australian N a w conrrratulations and good wishes on the occasion of its fiftieth anniversajr. The Royal ah ha; always greatly valued its close co-operation and warm comradeship with the Royal Australian Navy in both peace and war. This is a case in which they look forward to the Australians scoring many centuries. From A.C.N.B. to Admiralty. The Naval Board and the Officers and Men of the R.A.N. thank the Board of Admiralty, the Royal Navy and the Royal Marines for their good wishes which are very greatly appreciated. The R.A.N. is deeply conscious of the great debt of gratitude which we owe to the Royal Navy, our parent, for our traditions, guidance, training and so much material assistance. We greatly value the close association and friendship which we have enjoyed with the Royal Navy since our childhood, and we look forward to its continuance in our riper years. We hope that we shall do better than our last Test Score! Book Reviews FROM T H E DREADNOUGHT T O SCAPA FLOW VOLUh4E I : THE ROAD TO WAR, 1904- I9 I4 By A. J. MARDER (Oxford University Press. 42s.) DESPITEits somewhat illogical title this is one of the best and most important books written since the first publication of THE NAVAL REVIEW. It is a pleasure and a privilege to review it, but it is also a sad reflection on English scholarship that it is a foreigner-albeit a benevolent American-who has written it from the veritable 'corner' which he has made in this part of our history. Since his 'English Armament Industry and Navalism in the '90s' in 1938, Professor Marder has devoted his considerable talents to studying the development of British sea power during that critical half-century which ended with the scuttling of the German fleet at Scapa Flow. In 1940 he published in America 'The Anatomy of British Sea Power' which was sub-titled 'A History of British Naval Policy in the Pre-Dreadnought Era'; an English edition appeared in 1941 and received less attention than it deserved because of those troubled times. Since then, while the battleships have been disappearing, he has published in three volumes a selection of the letters of Lord Fisher and one of those of Sir Herbert Richmond, each supported by masterly summaries of the lives and times of their writers. Now appears the first of two volumes dealing with the Royal Navy in the Fisher era, sub-titled 'The Road to War', and covering the period 1904-1914. Inevitably there is some repetition in the author's writings. This book overlaps the last chapters of his first book and repeats some of the editorial matter in the four volumes of correspondence, but on the other hand it presents new material to supplement the previous works. And at least Fisher has had his wish-the dowager Duchess of Hamilton told Marder that 'he always wanted his biography to be written by an American because he thought an English writer would want to cut too much'. Its merit lies in the lucidity and scope of the account of policies and events resulting from the author's patient and diligent researches. There can be few sources he has not explored and few important survivors of the period he has not consulted. Richmond's aim was to disseminate not 'drum and trumpet history' but 'naval history linked up with the political, military and economic histories of which it is an integral part', and this is a perfect summary of Marder's efforts. He has attributed to Richmond 'all the assets of a great naval historian-a passion for the discovery and spread of truth, a succinct and lucid style, the brilliant ability to analyse situations, and to deduce from them fundamental principles, and a keen sense of the great importance of sea power in British history'. These words apply to their own writer. But he does not forget or disobey the rule, which he quotes in his preface, that 'the art of telling a story is an essential qualification for writing history'. FROM THE DREADNOUGHT TO SCAPA FLOW 4O3 Inevitably the narrative hinges on Fisher for it is concerned with the years when the redoubtable Jackie 'dominated the Navy as it has never been dominated by any other individual'. Marder's affection for the old ruffian is evident despite his efforts to be fair, and one can feel him striving to present accurately a balanced picture of the man who had so many critics that they could not all have been wrong. But how triumphantly he emerges, despite the irritating style of letter writing and the follies of grandeur that marred his later years and culminated in the pathetic abdication of 1915. How fortunate this country was to have had in the years before the war a rising officer with the necessary and extraordinary vision and ability, plus the power to use them forcefully and logically, in easygoing days of complacent conservatism. Some people doubtless regret that Fisher was 73 when war broke out (exactly when he had predicted, some years before, that it would), but in fact he did more for his country in forcing the preparations for war in the years of peace than he could have done in waging it. As Lord Hankey has recently said in 'The Supreme Command', 'this contribution took the form of a great reorganisation, amounting to a renaissance of the fleet, which began at sea in the Mediteranean and later on was continued in a wider sphere at the Admiralty and in the Committee of Imperial Defence'. This book is probably the only relevant major work not available to Marder; though he acknowledges some debt to Lord Hankey in his preface their books must have been in the course of printing at the same time. A comparison of the two works is most interesting-to Hankey the belief in our need for a strong Navy 'amounted almost to a religion' and both he and Fisher were agreed that the best role for the small British army was to land it at will, a manoeuvre possible only because of our sea power, rather than to commit it to the support of land-locked allies. The nub of the book is stated early: on p. 13 we are told that 'although some Englishmen have never been quite sure of it, the verdict of history is that in Fisher the Navy and the nation had found their man-a strong man ready to face the tremendous responsibility and personal risk of carrying out a constructive revolution in the Service rendered by the very pride of its traditions, one of the most conservative in the world'. The rest of the book is to some extent a justification of the man and his methods within the various contexts in which he had to work-with the Sea Lords (who generally supported him), a succession of First Lords, changes of Government, the Committee of Imperial Defence and a developing public opinion increasingly aware of naval affairs. His measures need no summary here and they are dealt with favourably and fairly in the book. After reading Volume I one is left with a feeling that the recent past is now appearing in a new light. Not only has it never been explained so accurately or lucidly before, but also to all except the most senior readers the period has been known to us mainly from a series of memoirs and books so essentially contemporary in outlook that they are in the 'current affairs' category. Their style is already curiously dated; e.g. the coming war was ofien referred to as Armageddon. Now the period is treated historically for the first time, and yet one is fortunate in stin being near enough, as it were, for the paint to smell fresh. We now know better how much reliance to place on the more dogmatic writings of Admiral Bacon and Admiral Dewar, and how much correction some of their accounts need. An entirely new view of the younger Churchill is presented, for which alone the book would be valuable, and the credit normally given to him for mobilizing the fleet in 1914 404 FROM THE DREADNOUGHT TO SCAPA FLOW is correctly attributed mainly to Battenburg. Churchill dominates the end of the book almost as much as Fisher the beginning-what a combination they must have been! And what astonishing latitude was allowed to Lord Charles Beresford. It is hard to disagree with Fisher's claim that in parleying with his insubordinate colleague the Cabinet were 'coquetting with mutiny, and dealing an irreparable blow to naval discipline'. Yet there is evidence on which to criticise some of Fisher's own decisions. Did he, for example, concentrate our strength in home waters to such an extent that he weakened dangerously our position in the Far East? It is probably too much to say that he was responsible for the Emden episode, or the temporary successes of the Scharnhorst and Cneisnau. We could never be strong everywhere. All the problems of the period are stated clearly and concisely: the likelihood of invasion, and the chance of a 'bolt from the blue' seem real. All the developments of material-the mine, the aeroplane and the submarine especially-and the struggle to keep the more sublime aspects of the naval profession in proportion are related with neatness and detachment. The details of the German challenge, the Navy scare of 1909 and the changes of policies both at home and abroad are explained so clearly and so readably that one takes in the background with far less difficulty and tedium than might have been the case, though there is still room left to doubt exactly which was cause and which effect in the naval race. Public opinion is carefully recorded and the ample evidence of its assessment shows the author's zeal and perception. It is surprising to find quite so many quotations from 'The Navy From Within' and so few from Woodward's more scholarly 'Great Britain and the German Navy', but as Marder has said, he finds Woodward deficient in the attention paid to the influence of public opinion on naval policies. Throughout the book diverse personalities emerge-all the illustrations are of First Lords and First Sea Lords-and above all, behind all, in office or retirement, towers Fisher: that man 'truly great despite his idiocyncrasies and truly good despite his violence'. There is an interesting reference to the foundation of THE NAVAL REVIEW, and a new emphasis on the part played both by King Edward VII and by a section of the press as supporters of Fisher and his policies. No single expressions remain in the memory as do so many of Archbishop Matthews', and there are no Mahanlike phrases about 'distant storm-beaten ships', but the book must be recognized as important as any by these two authors. One's only real doubt is whether Marder is always quite wise in his technique. He admits that he has eliminated the impedimenta of scholarship, such as the meticulous acknowledgment of every word that he has borrowed, in order to make the book more readable. This is not quite the same thing as attributing to a man words within quotation marks which even in their source appeared only as reported speech. Contrast, for example, the remark on p. 435 which is made to come from Beatty with its source on p. 120 of Lord Chatfield's 'The Navy and Defence', where, while admittedly the same sentiment is expressed, it can only be assumed to be a statement of Beatty's attitude and then expressed only in Lord Chatfield's own words. But this is by no means typical of the book, and must not be regarded as impugning its value. Richmond wondered in 1916 'if we shall ever live to see a true history of the war published'. His diary, which was fortunately spotted on his shelves by Marder, contains many scents for the discerning hunter, and much raw material for that THE STRATEGIC AIR OFFENSIVE AGAINST GERMANY, 1939-45 4O5 still awaited true history. Now we must wait and see whether Volume I1 will bring it. The accident which has delayed its publication can only increase our impatience, but it may have the compensation of making more sources available. If it is as good as Volume I our founder would probably have been satisfied. A. B. SAINSBURY THE STRATEGIC AIR OFFENSIVE AGAINST GERMANY, 1939-45 VOLUME I : PREPARATION By Sir CHARLES WEBSTER and NOBLEFRANKLAND (H.M.S.O. 42s.) THEfirst of the long-awaited volumes of the Official Military History series dealing with the Strategic Air Offensive carries the story up to the end of 1942. In several respects the broad principles established for this series have been departed from in these volumes. In the first place the authors state in their Preface that 'the controversial and complicated nature of the subject' has necessitated 'fuller documentation than has usually been employed in the oficial histories'. The publication of full references is to be welcomed, and would surely have been welcomed had it been universally applied in the official histories-none of which is, however, noticeably free from 'controversial and complicated' subjects. But the decision that all three of Sir Charles Webster's and Dr. Frankland's volumes (totalling over 1,100 pages, excluding the volume devoted to Appendices) should make their bow on the same day is less advantageous-if only because it is scarcely possible for reviewers or readers properly to digest such a meal within a reasonable time. For lack of any explanation by the editor or authors one can only guess that the decision arises from the fact that the story told in the first volume is, to quote from the Introduction, 'in many respects a melancholy oneY;and that the authors desired to offset the impact of the errors, misjudgements and failures of the early years by the successes recounted in the later volumes. Whether that hypothesis is correct or not, we shall probably never know; for Sir Charles Webster's tragic death only a few weeks before publication of a history to which he had devoted ten years' work precludes any request for enlightenment from him. It is, however, worth remarking that the first volume of 'The War at Sea' is also to a great extent a record of tragedy and error; yet it was not considered desirable to hold it back until the story of later victories was available. These volumes also differ in one other respect from the practice established for the rest of the Official Military History series, namely that they are not written from an inter-Service angle. Nor are they even a one-Service history; rather are they a forthright, graphic and at times brilliant account of the organisation, purposes and plans, and the accomplishments and failures, of one Command of one Service. Indeed the nearest parallel that occurs to this reviewer would have been three volumes devoted to the Western Approaches Command's part in the long Atlantic struggle; yet even that could only have been told as a joint story of the Royal Navy and of Coastal Command of the R.A.F. It is inevitable, but in this reviewer's opinion 406 THE STRATEGIC AIR OFFENSIVE AGAINST GERMANY, 1939-45 regrettable, that the restricted angle from which the historians of the Strategic Air Offensive view their subject has led them to make or to quote statements which are less than fair to the other Services-and especially to the Navy. Thus we are told that 'the B.E.F. was driven into the sea at Dunkirk', which is an odd phrase with which to describe the rescue of 338,000 soldiers; the resentment of Bomber Command over being required to 'hurl bombs into Brest harbour' when the Scharnhorst and Gneisenau were in that base is several times emphasised. But the profound influence of those ships on our strategy in 1941 receives no recognition. The Atlantic battle is repeatedly referred to as 'defensive', which in one sense it was, and many complaints from Bomber Command are quoted regarding 'the heavy commitment of assisting the Navy' in that campaign. Even the historians' admission that it 'was obvious to all (my italics) that the whole Allied war effort depended on the outcome of this gruelling and long-drawn-out maritime struggle', and that it 'had an ultimately offensive purpose', is vitiated by the many quotations from statements by Lord Trenchard and Air Marshal Harris to the opposite effect. To give only one example, on June 17th, 1942, Harris stated in a minute addressed directly to the Prime Minister that he regarded Coastal Command 'merely as an obstacle to victory'! This reviewer was particularly anxious to find out whether the historians' view would support or contradict the conviction that so many of us felt during the warnamely that Bomber Command was predominantly concerned in prosecuting a separate strategy, with too little regard for the other Services' needs and purposes. And as a result of reading this volume he is more than ever convinced that the concept of the separate strategy was a reality. Two men prevented it being carried so far as to prove disastrous-Sir Charles Portal, as Chief of Air Staff, and Sir Winston Churchill who, after a shaky start, developed a clear mistrust of what are here called 'cut and dried schemes for winning the war'. At the outset of their work the historians state that 'General Smuts hinted at the possibility (of victory through air power alone) in 1917 and there were moments (my italics) during the Second World War when Sir Arthur Harris seemed to have adopted the idea. Perhaps it even entered into Sir Winston Churchill's calculations in 1940 . . .' As regards Air Marshal Harris, and Lord Trenchard too, the foregoing quotation is shown, from this work, to be a considerable understatement. Thus a few pages later the historians state that 'in its extreme form this (i.e. the Trenchard) doctrine claimed that the next war could be won by bombing alone by destroying the enemy's will to resist'; in October, 1940, Harris wrote to Air Marshal Peirse that 'we are the only people that can win the war, and we are winning it7;while on May 19th, 1941, Trenchard told Churchill 'that if the bombers went often enough they could smash the morale of Germany. Meanwhile the Army and the Navy would have to recognise that they could make no contribution to victory until this had been done'. Finally we have Harris's minute to the Prime Minister of June 17th, 1942, in which he stated that 'victory, speedy and complete, awaits the side which first employs air power as it should be employed . . . in such a manner as would avail to knock Germany out of the war in a matter of months . . . it is imperative to abandon the disastrous policy of military interventions in the land campaigns of Europe'. Quite apart from the ethics of a C.-in-C. of a Command and a distinguished retired officer short-circuiting the Chiefs of St& Committee by pressing their views directly on the Prime Minister (and if many C.s-in-C. had THE STRATEGIC AIR OFFENSIVE AGAINST GERMANY, 1939-45 407 copied the example the whole basis of our war direction might have broken down), it is pertinent to ask how such extreme views came to be held, and what is the background to the theory of the 'independent air strategy'. The answer is given in the authors' first two chapters. Briefly stated the long struggle of the recently born R.A.F. to avoid being re-absorbed into the Army and Navy in the 1920s left a legacy of mistrust towards the other Services, and a determination to preserve 'independence' in strategic thought as well as in everything else. The young R.A.F. was, understandably, what today would be called existentialist; and people of that way of thinking are prone to exaggeration. Thus 'the separate identity (of the R.A.F.)', write the historians, 'was closely bound up with the plan for a strategic bombing offensive'; and that concept was the child of the decade (1919-1929) during which Trenchard was Chief of the Air Staff. Not until 1937 was 'the emphasis on defence imposed on the Air Staff from outsideyin this reviewer's opinion most fortunately for the nation. There is undoubtedly truth in the statement that in the 1920s the Army and Navy repeatedly tried to divide the R.A.F. between them; but the authors do not make plain that, as regards the Navy, the reason was that the Smuts Committee had made no provision for the continued development of specialised naval aviation. Had that been done in 1918, or had the Air Ministry under Trenchard been prepared later to allow it, the Admiralty would have been satisfied. As it was the Admiralty did not regain control of the Fleet Air Arm until 1937, with the result that it was the Japanese and the Americans who demonstrated the full capabilities of carrierborne aircraft. I have been told on good authority that, towards the end of his life, Lord Trenchard himself admitted that things would have gone better had the Air Ministry relinquished its claim to share in the control of naval aviation earlier. What is beyond doubt is that, however exaggerated Trenchard's views on the effects of bombing were, the continuation of the R.A.F. as a separate Service was in the main his accomplishment; and had he failed in that purpose our survival in 1940 seems very problematical. The chief fallacy propagated and universally accepted in Air Force circles during the Trenchard era and afterwards was that 'offence is all important and defence completely ineffective'; but there were many others as well, and they are fully and frankly admitted in these pages. High on the list stands the belief that 'bombers could defend themselves'; and that led to the total neglect of the possibility that the capital ships of the air would, like those of the sea, have to be escorted if the purposes of their missions were to be fulfilled. Next, operational difficulties were greatly underestimated, and the expected results were, in the authors' view, 'grossly exaggerated'. There was also a total failure to appreciate the importance of navigation, or to recognise that cameras were essential to accurate target identification. Though not mentioned here it was a pity that the R.A.F. took no account of Fleet Air Arm experience in navigation; for we had been training Observers in that difficult art since 1921, and by the 1930s we possessed an invaluable cadre of skilled and experienced men. Incidentally on the outbreak of war, and for the next two years or so, they were repeatedly lent to Bomber Command to help in navigation and ship recognition-a fact which might have received some acknowledgement here. The consequence of the persistent belief that navigation was a simple matter, and of all the errors in thinking and planning was, we are told, that in 1939 'Bomber Command was not trained or equipped either to penetrate into enemy territory by 408 THE STRATEGIC AIR OFFENSIVE AGAINST GERMANY, 1939-45 day or to find its target areas, let alone its targets, by night'. I t is hardly surprising that in such circumstances the first two years produced small results, and appalling casualties. The first pre-war dogma to be shattered by hard experience was that of the 'self-defending bomber force'. Yet two years later the need for fighter escorts was still being disputed, and when the Americans restarted the daylight offensive in which Bomber Command has been so severely repulsed, they had to relearn the same lesson the hard way. The parallel with American rejection of our experience regarding the effectiveness of the escort-of-convoy strategy in 1942 is striking. Though the early attempts to attack the German fleet ended in a costly fiasco, and it was also quickly revealed that Bomber Command 'could not carry out a strategic offensive in daylight', the switch to night bombing for a long time produced no better results. 'It took', we are told, 'more than two years to discover how to drop these bombs on a target area as large as a big city'. The first plan was to attack the German oil refineries-and it was only in the estimate that Germany might suffer a critical shortage of oil that our assessments of the possible effect of bombing came anywhere near the truth. The C.-in-C., Bomber Command foretold 'immense damage' to oil plants: but in fact it was negligible. In July, 1940, the priority was altered to place the aircraft industry first, oil targets second, and communications third-but it was a very long time before bombing had any appreciable effect on any of them. Gradually, and in direct contradiction of the views previously expressed by Sir Charles Portal and Air Marshal Slessor, the idea of precision attacks on selected targets was replaced by the proposal to adopt indiscriminate bombing of German cities. By October, 1940, oil and 'morale' were the 'primary objectives'; but no one ever succeeded in defining what was really meant by 'morale' -or perhaps our leaders were reluctant to admit that it really meant an unrestricted attack on the civilian population. 'Thus', write the historians, 'the fiction that the bombers were attacking military objectives in the towns was officially abandoned'. And Sir Charles Portal then foretold 'a quick death clinch'. Unfortunately once again we greatly underestimated our enemy, and the belief that the Germans would 'not stand a quarter of the bombing that the British have shown they can take' was as wide of the mark as all the other wishful thoughts on the effects of bombing. Indeed for many months the acceptance that Bomber Command, having failed to prove itself a 'rapier', could achieve its aim as 'a bludgeon' was shown to be totally erroneous. The reason was 'the appalling inaccuracy' of night bombing, which was first exposed in a report by Mr. Butt of the War Cabinet Secretariat in August, 1941. He showed that in all attacks only one-fifth of the bombers taking part in a raid (or one-tenth if the attack was on the Ruhr area) was actually dropping its bombs within five miles of the target. Yet there was widespread reluctance to accept the figures, and aircrews were inclined to regard the installation of cameras to take photographs at bomb release as carrying 'an official spy'. Yet in the following month Portal suggested that, given 4,000 bombers, Germany could be broken in six months. I n a very soberly worded minute Churchill replied that 'the effects (of bombing), both moral and physical, are greatly exaggerated'. By the end of 1941 Bomber Command was 'at the nadir of its fortunes'. 'If it was to remain in the war', we are told, 'it had no alternative but to fight in the dark'; but in the dark it was hopelessly inaccurate. On February 22nd, 1942, Air Marshal Harris became C.-in-C., and his drive and determination put new heart into a Command which THE STRATEGIC AIR OFFENSIVE AGAINST GERMANY, 1939-45 409 sorely lacked success, and whose losses had been wholly disproportionate to its achievements. Unfortunately there was a 'formidable legacy of previous neglect (which) could not be overcome in a day', and 'a tendency not to look facts in the face persisted'. None the less by the time Harris took over 'the limitations which beset the night bomber' had been 'gradually and ruthlessly revealed'. The authors hold that lack of cameras and the failure to realise the importance of Photographic Reconnaissance were 'one of the gravest omissions by the Air Ministry in the preparation for the bombing offensive'. Though many things continued to go wrong in 1942, Bomber Command showed itself to be 'incomparably more effective' in that year than in the preceding one. Yet we are told (somewhat contradictorily) that 'in reality the damage inflicted on Germany up to the end of 1942 . . . had but little effect on her war production or on the morale of her population'. At this point we may revert to Bomber Command's share in the Atlantic battle; for 1942 was a crucial year at sea. The attacks on U-boat bases and submarine building yards had been almost total failures, and the crying need then was for long-range air escorts to work with our convoys. The authors say that Bomber Command was 'regularly plundered' in the interests of other theatres (especially the Middle East) and functions (by which they mean Coastal Command). They protest against the Admiralty refusal to allow any Coastal Command aircraft to take part in the first 'Thousand Bomber' raid on May 30th, 1942, without taking any account of what was then happening at sea, and they dismiss in a footnote as 'tedious and irrelevant' any discussion of the crucial problem of the allocation of long-range reconnaissance-bombers to the Atlantic struggle. As, however, we are told that in January, 1943, the average daily availability of Lancasters in Bomber Command was no less than 178, the impartial reader may well feel that the dozen or two which might have tipped the scales in the Atlantic, and saved us enormous losses, could well have been spared. Not long ago a distinguished airman wrote to this reviewer that Roy Chadwick, the famous Avro designer, had told him in 1941 that he had plans for a Coastal Command version of the Lancaster. 'Bomber Command', said Chadwick, 'would never miss a dozen of those from their intake, and they could close the gap in which we cannot provide cover for the Atlantic convoys'. 'But', wrote my correspondent, 'our Cinderella Command could never acquire sufficient priority to get them. I have always considered that with those aircraft in operation from both sides of the ocean we could have won the battle of the Atlantic twelve or eighteen months earlier, with incalculable benefit to our war potential in other directions'. So much for the 'plundering' of Bomber Command. Actually the squadrons loaned by it were generally manned by crews under training, or by those not considered advanced enough to bomb German towns. The new directive to Bomber Command of February 14th, 1942, named 'the morale of the civil population, especially industrial workers' as the primary objective, and by the autumn of that year 'the policy of general area attack reigned supreme'. On March 3rd, 1942, the bombers at last scored 'an outstanding success' against the Renault works at Billancourt near Paris; but it is admitted that the conditions were on that occasion exceptionally favourable. Many pages later we learn that 6.73 per cent of the factory buildings were destroyed or severely damaged, that about 2,000 trucks were lost, and that four months after the raid 'production was higher than before'. So much for the 'outstanding success'. In March and April Liibeck and Rostock were heavily raided in 'two brilliant feats' which burnt the medieval towns 41° THE STRATEGIC AIR OFFENSIVE AGAINST GERMANY, 1939-45 but accomplished little else. Rostock was chosen by Harris because it was 'built more like a fire-lighter than a human habitation'. At Lubeck 312 people were killed and 1,425 houses destroyed. The raid on Rostock (where the Heinkel factory suffered some damage) is described as 'another great victory'. Then came the Thousand Bomber raid on Cologne on May 30th; undoubtedly a remarkable feat of planning and organisation. Forty bombers were lost, 474 Germans were killed, and 3,330 houses were destroyed, and over 40,000 people were temporarily rendered homeless. This is described as 'an amazing success' and 'a major victory'; which provokes the question 'victory over what ?' The next two 'Thousand ~ o m b e rraids ' (on Essen and Bremen) 'went largely astray'; and in the attack on Bremen the docks were undamaged and forty-four bombers were lost. Obviously the navigation of the aircrews and the accuracy of bomb-aiming still left much to- be desired. In August, 1942, the Pathfinder force, to which Harris had expressed himself as 'decisively and adamantly opposed', was formed-thanks to an intervention by Portal; and this, together with the increasing use of the new radar and radio aids (Gee, H2S and Oboe) at last held ~romiseof better results to come. Also in 1942'a reversion to 'precision' attacks in daylight by comparatively small forces of Lancasters was tried-against Eindhoven, Augsburg, Danzig and Le Creusot, all of which contained especially important factories. The short-range Eindhoven operation was a success, but the longer-range attacks were shown to be 'not a feasible proposition of war'. At Augsburg seven out of twelve Lancasters were lost, and at Danzig the submarine yards suffered no damage. Throughout the year all our estimates of the effects of bombing on Germany's economy and war production were 'the exact reverse of the real situation'. Production actually increased by 50 per cent, and total production was 80 per cent above 1941. By June, 1942, Rostock, Lubeck and Bremen, which Harris had claimed to have 'destroyed' a few weeks earlier, were 'in full production' and Cologne was 'rapidly recovering'. The actual loss of production was under 1 per cent in 1942, German 'morale' had not been affected, and 'the claim that Bomber Command could do more to help the battle of the Atlantic by bombing submarine construction yards than the ports from which they set out was not substantiated'. Exactly. But was air convoy escorts, and not attacks on yards or ports of exit, that were really needed to help master the U-boats. One must admire the forthright manner in which the authors have set out their conclusions, and the trenchant style of this work. For example, in March, 1941, Sir Charles Portal told the C.-in-C., Bomber Command that 'a very high proportion of bomber effort will inevitably be required to pull the Admiralty out of the mess they have got intoy-rather an odd remark by the C.A.S., observing that it was in that very month that our surface escorts scored their first outstanding success and eliminated the three most famous U-boat aces. 'It was in effect', comment the historians, 'the Admiralty which had got the Air Ministry out of the "mess", for if Bomber Command had, at this stage, been left free to carry out the oil plan it would probably have done a great deal more damage to its prestige than to its targets'. Though the volume contains much excellent writing, and is obviously the result of exhaustive research, there is in it a lot of repetition (possibly the result of two writers being engaged on it), and this reviewer found the chronology exceedingly difficult to follow-for the reader is constantly taken back to periods and events 411 BRITAIN I N WORLD AFFAIRS about which he has already read. Why, for example, are the actual results of the 1942 raids, which are recounted on pages 392-3 and 403-8, not given until the last chapter ? There are a few errors. For example, on p. 320 two, not three German battle-cruisers were in Brest in 1941; and it is certainly not true to say (p. 269) that 'few people except journalists ventured to advise the Army and Navy on how to conduct the war'. The Admiralty had to form a special section to handle proposals received from outside the Service! The historians wisely leave it to the reader to arrive at his own broad conclusions regarding the period. To this reviewer the volume constitutes a striking indictment of the 'separate offensive strategy' concept, and provides the strongest possible vindication of our organisation for the higher conduct of the war by joint Service committees-with a view to framing and executing a truly combined strategy. In the end we accomplished precisely that-in large measure thanks to Churchill, and to the statesmanlike attitude of his Service advisers. But it is hard not to feel that the appalling tale of error and of waste here recorded must have delayed the day when we could turn to a truly combined offensive of all arms. S.W.R. Editor's Note: Volumes 11, I11 and 1V of The Strategic Air Offensive against Germaszy will be reviewed in the next edition. BRITAIN I N WORLD AFFAIRS A SURVEY OF THE FLUCTUATIONS IN BRITISH POWER AND INFLUENCE: HENRY VIII TO ELIZABETH I1 By LORDSTRANG, G.C.B., G.C.M.G., 1i.B.E. (Faber and Faber and Andre Deutsch. 30s.) HEREare the reflections of a distinguished servant of the Foreign Office on the flowing and ebbing of our country's standing in the world, and on the predicaments which have successively faced our statesmen. Lord Strang was born in 1893. He served in the 1914-18 war with the Worcestershire Regiment and later at Divisional H.Q. He joined the Foreign Office in 1919, rose to Permanent Under-Secretary in 1949, and retired in 1953. He had service abroad in Moscow and in Germany, and I think was one of those attending on the Peace Conference of 1919. Of his subtitle Lord Strang says: 'Power is here taken to mean the capacity to coerce. . . . Influence is the capacity to persuade, based in some measure . . upon the possession of power. Together, they mean the capacity of a government to get its own way in international affairs. . . . Political sagacity and the exercise of diplomacy, the skill of manoeuvre, have a great part to play'. Lord Strang's summing-up, much abbreviated here, follows below:Looked at in retrospect, British foreign policy may seem to be characterised by alternation rather than by continuity. But the continuity lies in the objective while the alternation arises from the method. . 412 BRITAIN I N WORLD AFFAIRS Under Elizabeth I, England was a relatively weak state in a strong strategic position, forced to fight, chiefly by sea, first to avoid subjugation and then for security. Under the early Stuarts England was more secure than before and could be in or out of war as she chose, and she kept out of the Thirty Years War. The Protectorate was secure, but aggressive, and there comes one of the turning points in our foreign policy, to mercantilism. (Mercantilism, as opposed to free trade, is the use of the power of the state to stimulate exports.) William and Anne had to meet a great peril from France, and did so successfully by promoting coalitions and by engaging in land operations. Under Walpole, England could again be in or out of war as she chose, and for the most part she kept out. Under Chatham, England, now a world power, was aggressively bent on expansion overseas in the interest of trade. After this, a descent from the pinnacle, when Great Britain had to face a great continental coalition, frustrated by Rodney's victory. The peril from France under Napoleon was met as before. Then came a second turning point in our foreign policy, associated with Castlereagh-international consultation for the maintenance of peace, and concern for the general as we11 as for the national interest. Under Canning and Palmerston Great Britain could ride high upon the crest of power and prestige, and she remained secure, though not always unperturbed, till near the end of the century. Then came a fourth turning point, with the new peril from Germany, a return from isolation, and the sketching out of the Triple Entente. Between the two wars, a deceptive and dangerous lull, with more reliance than was prudent upon an ineffective system of collective security. Great Britain was not now free to go in or out of war as she chose; the decision lay with Germany. Then, at mid-century, a fifth turning point, Great Britain, with like-minded states in western Europe, stretching out hands across the Atlantic in a bond of mutual assistance for common security. The special quality of Lord Strang's survey can best be shown by a few quotations :'It is a mistake in foreign affairs to frame a policy closely upon a distant prognosis, or, in time of trouble, to throw up the sponge too soon, as Foreign Secretaries are so often urged to do by people to whom future trends in the international situation can present themselves with a certainty and a clarity which may be belied by the wayward, accidental or recalcitrant course of events themselves. The apparently inevitable does not always occur. If not accepted, it sometimes does not happen. It may well be a good maxim in politics to guess what is going to happen, and back it. But the possibility or even the probability that a thing may happen some time is no good reason for behaving as though it was certain to happen tomorrow. The better course is to bide your time and be ready for it, if it does happen'. 'It is useful for a statesman to declare the general objectives of his policy in concrete terms. . . . It is much less useful if general policies are laid down not in concrete form but in terms of moral concepts. This Gladstone was prone to do, as was his disciple Woodrow Wilson after him. For both of them the compulsions of international life too often ran counter to moral aspirations'. 'Here, in our situation in late 1940, was a divorce between power and influence. Our effective military power, apart from the Navy, was small. We were on the verge of financial collapse. But we stood as an inspiration to men of free mind throughout the world. The exiled governments of Europe were established among us. The voice of London day by day, gave encouragement to resistance and hope of victory. The Commonwealth sustained us.' 'If we cannot now defend our interests abroad as effectively as we once could, this is not simply or even mainly due to lack of power, but to the way in which the world is organised and the way in which the world behaves. If we were a good deal more powerful than we now are, we should not be in a much better position in this respect unless we threw aside all scruple and took the law by force into our own hands, where our power was sufficient for the purpose. This is not a thing we could easily do, because it has for long been, and still is, a British interest that in the world at large international law should be respected and international obligations observed'. Lord Strang's reflections are what one would expect from a good Foreign Office hand. They give both sides of each case for the reader's consideration, not without guidance from the writer's personal conclusions. Throughout the book he shows himself as fully conscious of the dominating influence of Sea Power as Mahan or as the authors of the Preamble to the Articles of War. British power and influence rose and fell with the world's respect for the prowess of the Royal Navy and the conduct and skill of the men who followed the sea. A.H.T. OUR TIMES, 1900-1960 By SIR STEPHEN KING-HALL (Faber and Faber. 28s.) THEauthor, in the prelude to this book, says: 'The period 1900-1960 is remarkable for the great changes which have occurred in the story of mankind and for the rapidity with which they have taken place.' T o the reviewer, on first gIancing through the book, what strikes him as remarkable is the amount of interesting matter covered in its 342 pages. But Commander King-Hall, the author of many books, has a crispness of expression which saves a lot of words. This crispness too, enhances the reader's interest in new angles of approach to old subjects. The book starts with a glance over the shoulder at early western civilization which, in so far as Britain was concerned, led to her rise as a sea power and ultimately to the Pax Britannica which, to quote the author, 'left her in a position of undisputed power, the like of which had never been seen before and is never likely to be seen again'. He also says that it would have been a stupendous act of world statesmanship had we worked to transform the Pax Britannica into a World Commonwealth of Nations. But, as he says, 'such an idea would not at the time have found support from other great powers'. Is it not possible, some of us might say, that if Britain and the big Commonwealth countries work up their common sea power and design better arrangements for inter-emigration and immigration, the Commonwealth as a whole might, in time, be a great factor in bringing about a Pax Mundi? 4I4 SALERNO AND ANZIO Next we come to a series of chapters leading up to World War I-'The War to end Wary-the setting of the stage for the great conflict. Then a critical review of the more important events in that war. This is followed by an exposition of the post-war situation, a situation which soon showed the most confirmed optimists that the world had not done with war. The rise of Communist Russia, for instance, was not exactly a harbinger of peace. The war, as we know, had stirred up new troubles and dangers. All these are set down. The panorama is clear and well lit. The second half of the book deals with the late war and the situation up to date. The most controversial subject discussed deals with defence in the nuclear age, a subject on which the author has already written two books. He holds that Great Britain, preferably with like-minded nations but if necessary alone, should renounce the use of nuclear energy for military purposes. Though many will doubtless disagree strongly with this particular policy they will probably agree with the author in many of his reflections on strategy and politics; and having read his book, will go away refreshed. G. C. DICKENS SALERNO By HUGHPOND (Kimber. 30s.) ANZIO By WYNFORD VAUGHAN-THOMAS (Longmans. 30s.) THEfirst of these books deals with the combined operation by which the Allies entered the Italian mainland on September 9th, 1943, and the second tells the story of the assault from the sea by which, in January, 1944, we hoped to break the stalemate onthe Gustav Line, to save the Fifth and Eighth Armies from further costly frontal attacks, and to capture Rome. It was in the Salerno undertaking (Operation 'Avalanche') that we first encountered first-class German troops installed in carefully prepared posirions, and in Major Pond's opinion the B.B.C. broadcast announcing the Italian armistice, which was received during the actual approach to the assault area, produced a feeling of complacency among the troops which vitiated their preparedness to face what was to prove a very stern test. In spite of a number of errors, and a good deal of confusion, the assault forces got ashore successfully. But the beachhead was still very shallow when the Germans counter-attacked in strength, and threatened to divide the British and American Army Corps. It was at this time of crisis (September 13th) that General Mark Clark, the Fifth Army Commander, ordered plans to be prepared to withdraw either the British or the American Corps and to land the re-embarked troops through the other Corpsy sector-a proposal which Commodore G. N. Oliver, who was in command of the northern (British) assault force, at once pronounced impossible of accomplishment, SALERNO AND ANZIO 4I5 and certain to lead to utter disaster. What is most astonishing is, as Major Pond says, that General Clark failed to inform either of his Corps Commanders of this plan. Indeed General McCreery, Commander of X Corps, first heard about it from Commodore Oliver, and at once took energetic steps to convince General Clark of the futility of the idea. A signal was despatched to Admiral Cunningham, the Naval Commander-in-Chief, who sent cruisers to embark more troops in North Africa and rushed up the battleships Warspite and Valiant to strengthen the naval gun support. Major Pond gives a vivid picture of the arrival of the battleships and of the effectiveness of their 15-inch salvos. 'This was naval gunnery at its best', he writes; and his final conclusion is that 'above all it was naval shelling that was causing the enemy dismay. Wherever they moved, wherever they fired from, they were certain to get in return a salvo from the ships' guns'. As he writes mainly from the soldiers' angle his tribute (which is actually well authenticated elsewhere) may be accepted without reserve. Though all ended happily, and on October 1st British troops entered Naples, the lessons of the operation are plain. Apart from the effects of the B.B.C. broadcast, already mentioned, Major Pond holds that American lack of enthusiasm for the Italian campaign as a whole was a major contributory cause to the near failure. General Clark himself emerges as a somewhat ambiguous character. Though his personal bravery is beyond doubt, his experience was not adequate to the command of such a critical undertaking; and his vanity certainly did not commend itself to many on the British side. General Montgomery, the author considers, could have helped the Fifth Army far earlier, and perhaps have forestalled the crisis altogether, had his Eighth Army pressed northwards at full speed after landing unopposed at Reggio on September 3rd; and one must admit that the lapse of thirteen days before contact was made with the assault forces landed from the sea does suggest that the Eighth Army's progress towards the scene of such bitter fighting was astonishingly leisurely. Major Pond tells how the war correspondents actually went ahead of the troops, telephoning the villages to discover whether the enemy had departed! I t is interesting to find in this account of an undertaking in which a great deal did not go according to plan (including a mutiny by a large number of Eighth Army men who were brought by sea to the Fifth Army's front) that he has nothing but praise for the manner in which the Navy and the Royal Marine Commandos carried out their tasks. One criticism of his work only comes to mind: he does not mention that the troubles in the American sector arose largely from the inadequate training of officers and men. The best troops were still in Sicily when VI Corps ran into such serious trouble. The planning of the assault at Anzio (Operation 'Shingle') was bedevilled by the same basic difficulties that had beset the Salerno landing-namely shortage of landing ships and craft, due fundamentally to the priority given by the Americans to the Pacific war, to preparations for the Normandy invasion, and to disagreements in the high command. Mr. Vaughan-Thomas sets his stage with a very clear account of the reasons why the assault could not be made by more than two divisions, and he makes plain that the chief responsibility for the decision to accept the risks and go ahead lay with Mr. Churchill. Yet the gamble came off, complete surprise was achieved, and when the troops got ashore on January 22nd, 1944, there was very little to prevent them at once seizing their main objectives in the Alban hills, or even driving straight into Rome. Unfortunately the American General Lucas, 416 GREEK TRAGEDY '41 who was in command of the assault forces, seems to have been infected by deep pessimism right from the beginning: he totally failed to seize the opportunity, the soldiers merely dug in and awaited the inevitable counter-attack, the beachhead was soon contained, and four months of bitter fighting followed before the junction of the forces landed from the sea with those coming up from the south took place. It is impossible not to feel that the assault at Anzio was one of the most imaginative conceptions of the war; and that the failure to accomplish its initial purpose was a tragedy of lost opportunities. If the soldiers were not prepared to accept the risks inherent in landing only two divisions there could be no possible point in launching the undertaking. But once the high command had decided to go ahead, the need for vigour and resolution should have been obvious. The parallel to the great chance lost when our landing in Suvla Bay in 1915, behind the enemy lines on Cape Helles, achieved complete surprise but was not exploited, is uncomfortably exact-as indeed Admiral Sir John Cunningham, the Naval C.-in-C., pointed out at the time in a letter to the First Sea Lord. Both these books, if they contain rather a lot of military detail, deserve wide study for the basic lessons they contain. They are the same as were driven home by the scores of combined operations in which British forces have been engaged since the sixteenth century. Firstly that complete unity of purpose in the high command and vigour and resolution in execution are essential to success; secondly, that a high degree of individual and collective training of all the many units taking part is required; thirdly, that surprise can bring unlooked-for opportunities, which must be seized with both hands; and, lastly, that naval fire support is an essential ingredient-until the Army's heavy artillery is got ashore. But, in fact, history contains abundant examples of those needs, and Sir Herbert Richmond had summarised them all during the war in a Historical Association pamphlet (No. 119, published in 1941). It does seem tragic that the same mistakes are so often repeated, and at such a heavy cost. Major Pond and Mr. Vaughan-Thomas have done well to remind us of them in these well-constructed and highly readable books; but they do leave a big question hanging in the mind. Are these lessons really understood and appreciated today ? MEMOR GREEK TRAGEDY '41 By ANTHONY HECKSTALL-SMITH and Vice-Admiral BAILLIE-GROHMAN (Anthony Blond. 25s.) AT the time of the Italian invasion of Albania in 1939 the British Government, under Mr. Chamberlain, had made promises to Greece, then governed by the dictatorship of General Metaxas, to go to her aid in the event of an Italian aggression. By August, 1940, however, the balance of power in Europe was very different, with Great Britain fighting virtually alone except for the Commonwealth. An enquiry by Metaxas in that month, as to what help Greece could expect from Great Britain under her guarantee, if his country was invaded by Italy, therefore placed the War Cabinet and the Chiefs of Staff in a very unenviable position. On the GREEK TRAGEDY '41 4I7 one hand, to renounce their obligations would be morally wrong; we had given our word and we could not go back on it. On the other hand, in Egypt and the Middle East General Wave11 with a small force of some fifty thousand was outnumbered by five to one by Marshal Graziani's army massed in Libya for an assault on the Nile Delta and the Suez Canal, and it was short of all the materials and sinews of war which had to be brought out round the Cape of Good Hope. If Egypt were to be lost, any aid sent to Greece would have been in vain. Italy in fact invaded Greece on October 28th, 1940, and was held by the Greeks who fought valiantly. This book recounts how Britain and the Commonwealth, stretched to the limit in all parts of the world, honoured their agreement after much political ambiguity and duplicity in Greece. In response to a direct appeal from Greece, British forces began to arrive at Piraeus on March 21st, 1941. Highly mechanised and fully equipped German forces under Field Marshal Von List came quickly to the support of Italy and entered Greece on April 6th, 1941. Before many of the British forces could even arrive, it was evident to Admiral Cunningham, though not to G.H.Q., Middle East, that an early evacuation might be necessary, and accordingly Operation 'Demon', the evacuation of British forces, was planned. Baillie-Grohman, then a Rear-Admiral, was the Naval Commander of this operation, and here he tells the whole tragic story in conjunction with Mr. Heckstall-Smith, who was in command of a tank landing craft at the time and saw the operation from another angle. It is a story of a combination of heroism and muddle and superb improvisation, interspersed with occasional episodes which do no credit to individuals or a Service. The political and strategical arguments as to whether forces should ever have been sent to Greece are well set forth-and without prejudice. The actual events as they took place, in Piraeus and other Greek ports during the evacuation, are described in detail and do much to supplement the very clear outline account in Captain Roskill's 'The War at Sea', Volume I. The authors have some trenchant remarks on certain aspects of the events which they describe, both on a high level and a more practical level, of which the following are examples :'wave11 was our greatest Army Commander in the war. Now, his name is in danger of being forgotten and his brilliance obscured by the fog of acrimonious and ill-mannered arguments over the merits of the Generals who succeeded him in the Middle East'. And again :'We were beaten in Greece for the same reason we were beaten in France and Norway. Because our pre-war policy of appeasement had left us totally unprepared for war, while, when the war began, our policy was to concentrate on the production of bombers rather than fighters'. Of international co-operation the authors say:'However, from the moment we landed at Piraeus we were at a fearful disadvantage because of the language question. . . . It is a deplorable fact that our senior officers were so tongue-tied as to be entirely dependent upon interpreters, and few of their subordinates were any better linguists.. . . It is to be hoped that in future the officers of our Services will have more than a smattering of, say, Russian or even Mandarin Chinese as well as of some language common to all those serving in the forces of the United Nations' 418 MEN I N UNIFORM In a final summing up:'Operation "Demon" and the campaign in Greece are now history. Like "Dynamo" at Dunkirk, "Demon" was made necessary by the defeat of the Allied armies by the Germans'. Cunningham, in his despatch to the Lords Commissioners of the Admiralty written on December llth, 1941, referred to 'Demon' as a 'melancholy operation nobly shouldered'. At that time, and viewed in its right perspective in relation to what had happened to our Expeditionary Forces in France and Norway, the Commander-in-Chief's words were just. Nevertheless Cunningham claimed it to be an episode to which the Merchant Service could look back with pride. Captain Roskill's summary in 'The War at Sea', by comparison, says:'. . . It is perhaps in these records that the purpose and justification of all that was endured by the Maritime Services at this time is to be found. Admiral Cunningham well knew what was required when he gave his clarion call to the Fleet that "we must not let the Army down". That summons, and, perhaps, a deep instinctive understanding of the issues involved and the tradition to be maintained, must surely have been the inspiration which brought the Mediterranean Fleet, scarred but triumphant, through its supreme ordeal'. The book is provided with a good map, some excellent illustrations, and gives a vivid picture of the human sufferings and hardships endured in this chaotic campaign. G.A.F. MEN I N UNIFORM MILITARY MANPOWER IN MODERN INDUSTRIAL SOCIETIES By M. R. D. FOOT (Published for the Institute For Strategic Studies by Weidenfeld & Nicolson. 21s.) This book is the third in a series of studies in International Security sponsored by the Institute For Strategic Studies, but the book is written by Mr. Foot, who brings much insight as well as practical experience to this crucial and rather baffling problem. The author was a scholar of Winchester and New College, Oxford. In the war he served at C.O.H.Q. and as a parachutist, and was wounded and decorated. He has taught history and politics at Oxford and is now engaged in historical research. The book examines the various methods that modern industrial States adopt to man their armed forces, and compares the possible systems; volunteer, conscript, citizen militia and a mixture of all three. Mr. Foot describes the advantages and disadvantages of each method and relates them to the historic and economic background of each country employing particular methods. He produces some most useful statistics, perhaps for the first time, showing many comparative figures for some thirty countries, including rates of pay, length of service, proportion of the population in uniform, and so on. MEN IN UNIFORM 4I9 It might surprise the more naive, if there be any, who believe that Russian Communism is synonymous with Egalitarianism to learn that the pay differential between a Russian General and a Private is 115 to 1, the similar figure in the British service being 204 to 1, and in the United States 15 to 1. It is fascinating to read that the average annual cost per head of a Canadian fighting man is in the ratio of 4223, expressed in terms of U.S. dollars, compared to 89 for a Turk. Intermediate figures include the Briton at 1503. The chapter on the United Kingdom problem is naturally of the greatest interest at the time when Conscription is about to end and where it is the hope that all Services can once more be filled to quota by voluntary recruitment. On this theme Mr. Foot says:'For all the ancient traditions of the armed services of the Crown, they are now embarked on a new voyage that is set about with perils. As was said earlier, the dropping of compulsory National Service is a gamble; the odds are no doubt in favour of success, but success is no certainty. It is of particular importance that the Services should keep open minds about whether the gamble comes off, and should be prepared to change to some other system-in good enough time. The butter of forces in being is going to be spread exceedingly thin over some parts of the bread of British commitments in the coming few years. Too thin a spread produces severe overstrain for regular forces, lowers their morale and hence their fighting quality, and must be avoided. Nor will the nation be really secure if the forces available can only deal with a single emergency at a time. If there turn out not to be enough men in uniform for safety, then the Chiefs of Staff must persuade the Government, and the Government must persuade the public, to accept some form of compulsion again. It is important that if a change along these lines turns out to be needed, it should be made before an avoidable national humiliation persuades the public of the need for it, and not after. The present policy of Government spokesmen on this subject in Parliament can only be described as prevaricating. They seem to forget the old saw that honesty is the best policy, and to be reluctant to admit that they may have made a mistake. No one now can know whether their decision was a right one, it would be straightforward to say so, and to trust the public by telling it the truth'. This book will be read by those who have any responsibility for our defence; and especially by senior officers, politicians and civil servants who can influence policy. At the moment of writing, the national unemployment rate is averaging only 1.2 per cent of all men and women over the age of 15. Incidentally the frontispiece of the Naval War Manual is a picture of a splendid looking Petty Officer beneath which is the inscription 'The most important single factor in war'. G.A.F. COMMAND T H E FAR SEAS By KEITHMIDDLEMASS (Hutchinson. 25s.) THERE seems recently to have been a renewed interest in the Kaiser's war, mainly among writers of the rising generation, and in this book an author in his twenties retells the story of the German cruisers that were at large in August, 1914, and our widespread endeavours to keep them in check. The subject is certainly a dramatic one. Though only four months elapsed before all these cruisers were virtually eliminated they were stirring times, both for the participants and for an anxious Admiralty with no concrete experience of trade protection under steam. The problems involved had been studied during the previous thirty years or more, but many factors were difficult to assess, particularly how long a steam warship could be expected to remain at large if she succeeded in refuelling from captured colliers. It was assumed that military transports must be escorted, but to convoy trade was thought impracticable without an unacceptable dislocation of our world-wide commerce; and to this objection was added an unjustified mistrust of the ability of tramp steamers to sail in company. If, however, the focal areas of the trade routes were held in strength and care was taken to vary the tracks of ships between these areas, losses should be few. There was also a hope, far less justifiable, that it would be possible to hunt down the enemy cruisers, a specious phrase which bedevilled the protection of the Indian Ocean trade against the Emden (destroyed eventually, not by her hunters but by the escort of a passing troop convoy) and which sometimes exercised its distracting influence even in the last war. What happened when these matters were put to the test is told by Mr. Middlemass from most of the available British and German sources. His account is an engrossing one and on the human and strategical side it is well told. Full justice is done to the participants and there are some lifelike portraits of several of the protagonists. The most dramatic operations were, of course, those of the German China squadron: its voyage across the Pacific to no clear outcome; the annihilation of Cradock's armoured cruisers; and von Spee's unlucky decision to attack Port Stanley, leading by chance to his fatal encounter with Sturdee's battle-cruisers. But the careers of the other cruisers are also fully recounted: the Karlsruhe and Dresden and a few armed merchant cruisers that joined them in the Atlantic; and the Emden and Konigsberg in the Indian Ocean. And so too, though not part of the trade war, are the operations of the Goeben and Breslau in the Mediterranean. But if the strategic story is clear, this cannot be said of tactical matters. Unfortunately Mr. Middlemass has only a sketchy knowledge of the naval background and is woefully ignorant of rudimentary technical matters. This makes many of his remarks and his accounts of battles hard to understand. For example, a prefatory remark that the German 4-1-inch guns outranged our 6-inch and were nearly as destructive is shown to be wrong in his account of the Sydney-Emden action. They did in fact outrange our 6-inch on the older mountings, but to equate their 35 lb. shell with the 100 lb. of the 6-inch does not make sense. T o go further and aver that their 8.9s (a misprint for 8-2) were up to our 12-inch (250 lb. against 850 lb.) is hardly pardonable. On that valuation the Falklands battle would have been a contest between equals. To say that common shell were filled with cordite COMMAND THE FAR SEAS 42 I is perhaps an excusable, if unnecessary, error. But when it seems that he does not know the difference between an engine room and a boiler room, and this leads to such a flight of fancy as: '. . (The Cornwall's) engine room seemed like a mediaeval picture of hell with every stoker feeding the boilers till they were heated far beyond their capacity, while the engines throbbed unmercifully under their feet . . .' one can hardly take any of his descriptions seriously. In addition, misprints and slips abound. Twice in the text and once under a photograph Winston Churchill is the First Sea Lord. The Invincible's boiler brickwork becomes her brick boilers. Casemates are casements throughout. The U.S.S. Monitor of Hampton Roads' fame becomes the Minotaur. The County class armoured cruisers are called light cruisers. 'Three miles ahead on the port beam' is difficult to understand. 'Since Tudor days the tradition of the Navy had been that a British warship sank rather than surrendered' is not true of our renowned wars of the eighteenth century. The battle fleet went to Scapa Flow, not Cromarty, at the end of July, 1914, and Jellicoe did not become C.-in-C. until August 4th. And so on and so on. These are not matters of great importance, but there is one error that might pass unnoticed which affects the escape of the Goeben on August 7th and the question whether the First Cruiser Squadron could have brought her to successful action if Troubridge had stood on. In general the Goeben and Breslau story is well told here, with balanced and generous judgements. But it is stated that, from 10.40 p.m. on August 6th to the afternoon of August 7th the Goeben 'made a speed of 27/28 knots'. In fact she averaged 17 knots during that period. (The author does not include the relevant volume of the German official history in his bibliography, but it should have been obvious that the Gloucester could not have kept touch at 27 knots.) Because of boiler defects the Goeben had been extensively re-tubed at Pola in July but, despite this, her full-power escape from the Invincible and Indomitable on August 4th had started more trouble, and with tubes constantly giving out it is doubtful if she could now have done more than 20 knots. If that was so. the justifiable fear that the First Cruiser Squadron would be picked off piecemeal at loni range would have been disposed of, and they might have been able to close, though slowly, to a range at which their more numerous 9-2s and 7-5s might possibly have been a match for her 11-inch. Troubridge could not have known this, but it is one of the 'might-have-beens' of history; for it is said that when he turned-in that night he had determined to accept the risks of a daylight battle if he failed to intercept the enemy before dawn, but that, in the middle watch, his Flag Captain woke him and persuaded him that to do so would not only be dead against his orders but clearly unsound-which in the light of existing knowledge it would have been. And so he reluctantly turned back. Despite, therefore, what might conceivably have been a favourable outcome, Mr. Middlemass's judgement that 'Troubridge was no coward, but a man of too great caution and too little initiative for this moment of crisis' seems unduly harsh-on an officer whose subsequent activities with the Serbian army were a shining example of courage and leadership. That the events of the First World War should now be reviewed by writers to whom they must seem old-time history is much to be welcomed, and it is to be hoped that Mr. Middlemass will try his hand at some further aspects of that struggle. But it would be to the good if he could cultivate a sounder knowledge of naval affairs before chancing his arm as hazardously as he has done here. J.C. . GREAT SEAMEN By OLIVERWARNER (Bell. 16s.) 'Seamanship is the art of managing a boat, a ship, or a fleet in open water. It is exercised in peace and war, in storm and calm, in trading and discovery; and because under most circumstances, it cannot be practised alone, it implies leadership'. In these words the author defines the quality that he sets out to demonstrate. He has picked out ten British seamen, starting with Drake and ending with Cunningham, and devoted a chapter to each, in which he gives a brief account of their lives and times, paying particular attention to their most famous exploits. The author abides by his definition of seamanship by not only including the great battle-winning Admirals such as Hawke, Howe and Nelson and the circumnavigators Drake, Anson and Cooke, but also Captain Kane for his magnificent shiphandling during the hurricane at Samoa and Shackleton whose epic boat journey is surely unrivalled. He has avoided the mistake of over-dramatising his account or of over-praising its heroes; he writes with masterly simplicitly and although there is nothing in this book that has not been said before and in much greater detail by others, it is a story that cannot be written or read too often as long as Britain is interested in trying to produce Great Seamen. D.B.M. BLACKWOOD'S MAGAZINE September, 1961 (William Blackwood and Son. 2s. 6d.) WHILEit is not usual to review magazines in THE NAVAL REVIEW, the appearance of an article by a senior and distinguished naval officer, whose nom de plume ('Blake') members will recognise, in the current edition of 'Blackwood's', seems a sufficient pretext for departing from precedent; and, anyway, 'Maga' is in a class by itself. In the article entitled 'The Modern Navy', the author sets out to discuss the required 'shape and size' of the Navy in order that it may be able to fulfd its present and foreseen tasks. If it had no other claim to attention it would be unique in the fact that that fatuous abstraction, beloved of StafFColleges, 'Sea Communications', is not mentioned. Perhaps this is because the author knows, perhaps better than any other officer now on the active list, that what the Navy has to try to defend in war is no abstraction but merchant seamen, living flesh and blood, 'living' ships and their priceless cargoes. The conclusions seem worth quoting: 'The Navy's size and shape must be dictated mainly by the need to fight limited wars. But both the aircraft and the ships must be capable of taking their place alongside our allies in a global nuclear war if it should come. They must therefore be designed to compete with the most advanced weapons, and as a result they will be both complex and expensive. Quality must not be sacrificed for quantity. The wide range of possible threats in a limited war makes it necessary, in addition, to prepare both for "sophisticated" and "unsophisticated" attacks. Thus the Navy must keep all techniques of warfare available and must keep them well exercised. In particular, minesweepers are needed which can make ocean passages and operate on their own for reasonable periods. Modern amphibious ships and craft are required and aircraft are needed to support military operations ashore'. 'As for numbers, a full insurance policy would be unbearably expensive. But surely a minimum policy would be to maintain east of Suez one strong task force, kept constantly up to strength and ready for action and capable of escorting and supporting a military expedition, and of keeping itself at sea for long periods away from its main base. West of Suez the nucleus of such a task force is required in order to fulfil our obligations to N.A.T.O., and it would be understood that in the event of global war the ships east of Suez must return to the Atlantic'. 'It is clear that in the foreseeable future there will be need for aircraft carriers in the Navy, though the advent of vertical take-off aircraft may eventually affect their design. Commando carriers must be available, and to carry the number of anti-submarine helicopters that will be required it may be more economical to build comparatively small ships as "helicopter carriers". 'The Navy must take seriously the "Fleet train" concept. More tankers, store and victualling ships, repair ships and mobile floating docks are required. Of these, the replenishment ships must be capable of high speed. If the cost of this Fleet train makes necessary a reduction in the number of combatant ships in the Navy, the sacrifice must be accepted. For too long the potential mobility of the Navy has been stressed, while little has been done to make such mobility genuinely possible'. 'The critic may easily say, "This seems an old-fashioned plan. Surely you are looking backwards instead of forwards. You are falling into the trap into which all military men fall, of preparing to fight the last war".' 'If you believe, as I do, that the most probable war to be fought is a limited war fought without nuclear weapons, then the plan is not so old-fashioned and not so stupid. I believe that the most pressing danger facing our country and the West as a whole is not the danger of nuclear destruction, but of insidious or overt gradual encroachments which will end in an almost bloodless victory for the Communists unless firm opposition is provided. I believe that the Navy can do much to help provide that firm opposition'. 'But when it comes to considering the possibility of fighting global nuclear wars, we must be realistic and remember that we can no longer "take on the world" at sea. That is why we have allies in N.A.T.O., C.E.N.T.O. and S.E.A.T.O., and why, in particular, it is vital, in the true sense of the word, to keep close, both i n policy and in technical matters, with the United States of America'. Your reviewer can but voice a heartfelt 'Hear, hear!' G.M. T H E EYE OF T H E WIND (Hodder and Stoughton, London. 42s.) 'IT seems that I was serendipitous'. 1Mr. Scott has, as he confesses, a liking for out-of-the-way words, for the nomenclature and specialised language (QuillerCouch would have called it 'jargon') of whatever activity is at the time engaging his attention. Who among those of us who like messing about in boats would say or write that 'the interplay of the main sheet and the tiller requires an extreme exility of touch'? But it is good for us all to be driven to our dictionaries, and being, I confess, so driven, I felt I had found in his use of the word 'serendipity' a clue of some importance to this prolifically gifted person. Coined in 1754 by Horace Walpole, from the old name of Ceylon-Serendipthe word was used to mean the faculty of making happy and unexpected discoveries by accident. In his chapter 'The Lure of Serendipity', Scott says, 'I wanted things to happen; I was not so much interested in the causes of their happening, nor in the human conflicts and relationships which made them happen, but rather in the effects of the happening on my day-to-day life. For me to be happy things had to be happening, and in a curious way they seemed to happen all the time. It seems that I was serendipitous.' It ought perhaps to be said that the 'by accident' of the definition cannot strictly be applied to a man who has so consistently bent events to be independent of accident, shaping them to his purposes and to his desires. So many talents are proved, beyond doubt, in this fascinating book, to have been subject to his mastery, that it seems well-nigh indecent that the dispenser of gifts should at his birth have dealt so many trump-cards into the hand of the young Peter. Small wonder that as he sits, his big book finished, looking through his huge plate-glass window at Slimbridge upon his Wild Fowl Sanctuary, he concludes &th the conviction which begins his Foreword-that he is without question the luckiest and, as he believes, the happiest man he knows. The reader searches for basic and unifying principles underlying Mr. Scott's so varied interests and activities. These can perhaps be found in the artistry which he inherited from his sculptor mother and the courage he had instinctively learnt from his greatly courageous father. In the narrower sense his artistry has found its outlet in his drawings and paintings; the line drawings and colour plates which make 'The Eye of the Wind' so handsome a book give evidence of this. His paintings of wildfowl have an acknowledged place in the affections of bird-lovers throughout the world. But in the wider sense, his artistic perfectionism-and he is in all things a perfectionist-is seen in all he has done, in his handling of boats, planes and gliders, in his love of skating (he might in this have become a world champion), in the creation of his Slimbridge Wildfowl Trust. In his wildfowling his joy was surely-though not only-in the beauty of the bird on the wing, in the line and colour of marsh and fen more than in the mere killing which he later coi~sciously and conscientiously abandoned. In his sailing, the set i f the sails in all their beauty, the play of light upon the waters, has entranced him; in his flying and gliding the architecture of the clouds has delighted him-and from early boyhood he has loved and been moved by the music of the great masters. THE EYE OF THE WIND 4=5 With the courage he had learnt by emulation from his father he took the modesty that is almost always characteristic of the brave man. He is ambitious, setting his sights high, and he likes recognition, but he admits his mistakes and prints praise and blame alike. Writing of his thoughts before the Dieppe raid, described with great vividness as he saw it from his new S.G.B.9, he writes of leaving behind his young and newly-wedded wife Jane: 'This (the raid) was the sort of operation I had always wanted to take part in-something so different from the routine work of the destroyers in the North Atlantic. . . . I t was a special party with its own special dangers and I suddenly realised that I had got more to lose than I had had before. I wondered how brave I was going to be now that I had personal responsibilities. . . . My courage, I realised, was not so robust that I could afford to undermine it. Such things were not to be thought of in too much detail. One would be as brave as the chemicals in one's body allowed. It was all a question of adrenaline anyway'. His courage is manifest, and taken for granted, in the happenings related in the thirty-five chapters (out of a total of ninety-three) covering his wartime experiences in the Navy. His account of his entry into the Navy is not without interest and humour. 'Since my father had linked me more strongly with the Navy and my yachting experience had qualified me for the Royal Naval Volunteer Supplementary Reserve, this was where I had finally been enrolled at the beginning of 1939. The Supplementary Reserve was a special band composed largely of yachtsmen who believed themselves to have an assured place in the wartime Navy from the very beginning of hostilities. I was soon to discover that my impatience to start a new life in the Navy was most unpopular with the authorities. When I wrote to the Admiralty I had no reply for three weeks. . . . When an answer finally came from Their Lordships, it was to inform me that I should on no account communicate with them again on the subject of being called up, that I was not wanted now, and that it was even possible that I should not be wanted at all. About a week later I was called up.' This to a man who had already twice won the Prince of Wales Cup and was an Olympic bronze medallist in dinghy sailing, who was to end the war as a Lieutenant-Commander mentioned three times in despatches, M.B.E. and D.S.C. with Bar! Those for whom these naval chapters of 'The Eye of the Wind' have most appeal will follow with deep interest Mr. Scott's life and experiences for some two years in H.M.S. Broke, and perhaps most of all the chapter on 'Fire at Sea', in which is vividly told the story of the rescue work, at dead of night and in gale conditions. from the blazing ex-liner of 15,000 tons, H.M.S. Cornorin, turned cruiser. This is but one of a succession of enthralling episodes-at Dieppe, off and on the Cherbourg Peninsula, the seven minesweepers in the Channel, and many more, all recounted with a faithful and sincere pen. A famous E-boat Commander, Kapitan-Leutnant 'Charlie' Miiller, with whom, taken prisoner, Scott made friends, comes into these chapters, bearing witness to the sincerity of Scott's writing. 'Charlie' had been allowed to read the MS of his book on the work of the Coastal Forces in the Channel and the North Sea. 'There are many scenes so well described that I-because I had quite the same often only on the other side-thought I was once more in those situations. The description of feelings during eventless patrols, sighting the enemy, the moment when the torpedo slips away, the endlessness of time until the fish hits his target or not, the sighting of phantoms afler a hard look-out for hours, the eternal talking about the proceedings in the action after having got into harbour, 426 CORAL AND COLOUR OF GOLD the daily life of the Senior Officer, etc., are particularly genuine. . . . You often made life a hell for us'. The half has not been told about this exciting book. Nothing has been said of the great variety of interesting people with whom his 'happeningsy have brought him into contact, from Queen Alexandra whom as a small boy he pushed forward by the bustle with the exclamation, 'Now let's be a train . . . Chuff, chuff, chuff, chuff, chuff!' to his friends on the lower deck; nothing of his Oundle days or of his time at Cambridge, where he took a foremost place among the roof climbers of his college; nothing of his first exciting sallies into the world of flight during the war to learn something of the problems of co-operation between R.A.F. and R.N.; nothing of his important work on camouflage; nothing of the delicacy with which he touches upon his married life; nothing of his hair-raising beginnings as a glider pilot or of the way in which he has come right to the top in this domain; nothing of his exploration of the Perry River area in the Canadian Arctic; nothing of his experiences at 'The Hustings' at Wembley North; nothing of his rise to eminence as a broadcaster and television personality; nothing of the 'bees' that buzzed from time to time in his incubatory bonnet-and far too little about that by which he will most surely be most remembered, his beloved Wildfowl Sanctuary at Slimbridge and all that is therein. All these are woven into his story along with many a delicious light touch which make the book a joy to read. The wind blows from well-nigh every point of the compass. It is the privilege of the reviewer to voice a grumble or two! The line drawings are irresistible, the photographs are very good, but this reader at any rate has longed for the occasional chart or map to help him. The colour plates are modern in feeling and doubtless convey the atmosphere of the scene better than did Mr. Scott's earlier pictures; but such a picture as 'White-footed geese . . .', in which the birds are draped in total black, with no trace of white or any other colour, make one long for his earlier style. Mr. Scott would perhaps say that for the detail we must go to his 'Coloured Key to the Wildfowl of the World'. CORAL AND COLOUR OF GOLD By ROYSTRUBEN (Faber. 2 1s.) 'THISis the story of a discarded naval officer, sailing for a living amongst the coral reefs of the South Seas, and seeking gold in New Guinea'. Thus the author introduces and explains himself at the beginning of his beguiling book. After twelve years' service Roy Struben was invalided out of the Navy, and had to look for fresh employment. Starting on a business training, he says he was haunted by a vivid mental picture of 'a fleet of little brigantines sailing out of Malta on the first breeze after a long calm', as he had seen them from a reconnaissance plane. A particularly dull lecture on Common Law one murky afternoon settled the matter, and he decided to go to Fiji to look for a trading schooner. After several false starts he at last bought the Navanora, lying in a rather poor state of repair, CORAL AND COLOUR OF GOLD 4=7 at Tulagi in the Solomon Islands. She had been built in New Zealand for the coasting trade and had carried gravel and timber. Sixty-one feet long, with very thick timbers, she had been sailing for fifty-seven years and she cost him E495, including repairs. With the Navanora, Struben, with a crew of kanakas, mostly a very mixed bunch and full of wiles, traded in the Solomons, and his relations with his crew, and their kind, make amusing and enlightening reading. He traded mostly in copra and trocas shell. This was fairly profitable and gave him some varied voyages, which he describes with enthusiasm. But he also, as a sideline, owned a gold-claim in New Guinea, which he had won for a El entry fee in a ballot put up by the New Guinea Government. It was being worked by an unknown partner, and although life was good, with work coming in, and he was sailing in those lovely seas as his own master, Struben decided to sail up to New Guinea to see how things were progressing. After many complications with the crew they set off, and from this moment his days as a 'mangrove mariner' were over and he became a gold miner. The Navanora was taken over by a friend on a share basis, and Struben went up to his gold claim. The ethics and jargon of goldmining are like Chinese to the unitiated, and a little more explanation of the terms would have been welcome. It seems endlessly disappointing work and, at best, chancy. The claim not being very profitable, he decided to set out with his dog and a party of long-suffering bearers, further into the unexplored wilds of New Guinea, and he tells of fantastically hard going and setbacks with humour and equanimity. Anyone contemplating a similar expedition can learn a lot-or decide dead against it. One can sympathise with the bearers for their periodic faint hearts and fits of gloom and depression. At last, with practically nothing to show for their efforts, and worn out with shortage of food, endless rain, and impossible terrain, the expedition turned back. But the author reckoned, philosophically enough, that none of his time had been wasted, his intangible gains being adventures on sea and land, a better understanding of himself and other human beings, and he had learnt 'how unnecessary but how pleasant is personal comfort'. He now farms in Cape Province but, as a postscript, he tells how after the war, in which he served again in the Navy, he revisited the Solomons and found they had lost none of their enchantment. The Navanora, alas, had been sunk. His partner was still mining near their old worked-out claim, but the rich days are over and gold mining is now an unrewarding struggle. P.H. Correspondence LETTER FROM A FAILURE SIR,-In his article 'The Return of the Midshipman', 'Falconer' has again stated the opinions of the Fleet on the last Training Scheme. I am a product of it. It doesn't seem to have occurred to him and many others that possibly the Fleet itself was to blame for the failure, through not appreciating what the new Acting SubLieutenants coming out of Dartmouth were, and the training they needed. In fact, the Fleet hadn't briefed itself for the new era, and as in all walks of life, new ideas cannot ever succeed if those concerned in bringing them to fruition know nothing about them. The great majority of the Captains and First Lieutenants of our first shipswhose job it was to continue the training we had had at Dartmouth-were of the 13-year-old entry. Many of them had not read the current A.F.0.s on us new types, and all they seem to have heard, and that through unofficial channels, was that we hadn't the sea-time and experience that they themselves had at the same stage in life: this immediately prejudiced them against us. They knew what splendid fellows they had been with one brand new stripe on their arm, and expected us to be the same. We weren't, and those who had devised the scheme realised it. But those of relatively junior rank in charge of our training hadn't themselves wide enough experience to take us new problems in their stride. On leaving Dartmouth, the new Acting Subs. were drafted into three channels: the big ships, the coastal minesweepers and, thirdly, the frigates and destroyers. In the first category, the inevitable happened; the new 'types' took on the status of the Midshipmen they had relieved. There were too many of them to be given useful jobs; on the other hand, as they had that stripe and lived in the wardroom, they couldn't be given the kind of training the Midshipmen had had. Many were left to their own devices, not wanted by anyone as they were thought parasites by the working community. They got no responsibility and little guidance. In the second category, the exact opposite happened. As third and fourth hands of the minesweepers, the new officers had positions of considerable responsibility. They had sailors to look after seriously and much of the necessary but mundane paper-work that even a junior administrator is involved with. They were virtually bosses of their departments and received little help. Nevertheless their seniors were only too pleased to drive home their mistakes. The result was that at the end of their first commission, they came away with an undeserved confidence at having coped with their small jobs in the very specialised little Navy of their own; in fact they were still lacking in much of the more comprehensive training of the Fleet, and had been allowed to develop their own way of doing things, often not the best way for anything but their own minesweeper. I myself was lucky enough to come under the third heading. I was sent to a frigate whcre the Captain had made it his business to find out what sort of officers he was training, and took considerable care to ensure that our time was sensibly employed. I was given the jobs of Sports Officer and Education Officer, both of which required little professional knowledge, but which gave me the opportunity to mix with a great proportion of the ship's company and to take away the stigma CORRESPONDENCE 429 of passenger. For my training, I was made second navigator, second officer of the watch at sea and second officer of the day in harbour under the senior watchkeeper. He had enough experience and confidence in himself to allow me to do most of the work, whilst keeping a firm eye that the situation remained in hand and that I was corrected when wrong. After some months in the ship, when I felt more sure of my surroundings, I was sent to the technical departnents and so obtained a useful working knowledge of everyone's business. Thus st the end of my time in that ship I came away with the confidence of a sound training, and happy that I had been able to play a useful part in the commission. I am certain this was the way that the authors of our scheme would have wanted it; but as I have pointed out, this was more often not the case. I had been lucky in my ship and Captain. Others may have had equally good Captains in every respect but their training. Any scheme will die unless the tezchers know what they have to do. Let us hope that this new scheme is circulated su%ciently to the active Fleet, so that those in command may know what to put into effect. Yours truly, WYNCOLL INTELLIGENCE is heartening to have tangible evidence that a letter or article in THE is read by those in higher places. I was therefore delighted when N.I.D. accepted the challenge and replied to some of the charges in my October letter by a recent editorial to the Quarterly Intelligence Report. My present purpose is to draw other members' attention to this encouraging indication that there may perhaps be more purpose in writing to THE NAVAL REVIEW than just to remove a bee from one's bonnet. But having started, I cannot resist the temptation to return to the attack on this question of educating our Navy about their potential enemies. I have no quarrel with the Division over their dissemination of classified information, since the standard of both content and presentation has steadily improved over the years. We must all concede that recent issues of Q.I.R. bear little resemblance to those of a few years back, which often paralleled more closely the 'Tatler' than an intelligence review. Current numbers are both up-to-date and highly informative, and if properly and ccnstantly read, provide all that the majority of officers should need to know about their potential enemies. The more general dissemination of unclassified information is far less satisfactory; in fact it is virtually negligible, and paradoxically, inhibitions concerning security are probably the root cause of this deficiency. But, whilst security in all matters affecting intelligence is of course vital, its twofold purpose would seem to be:(a) To protect your sources. (b) To deceive the enemy as to the extent of your knowledge about him, if it is to your advantage to do so. Once any information is published openly, any classified source of that same information cannot then be compromised by further dissemination; at the same time, the enemy must necessarily assume that you are aware of that information about him, and you cannot deceive him by continuing to preserve silence on the SIR,-It NAVAL REVIEW 43O CORRESPONDENCE subject. It can thus be seen that much information which was originally received in classified form can subsequently be downgraded. In any case the importance of any one item of information is not necessarily related to its security classification, and this is particularly applicable to the more general background type of information. We could therefore go a very long way to teaching the Navy all it needs to know about its enemy by using only overt material. There already exists a mass of such information on the Russian armed services which is readily available to the public, and one has only to take Jane's, or the Swedish, German or French equivalents, to find a very broad cover of the Soviet navy. Unclassified American technical and service journals contain a continuous flow of relevant information and there are several authoritative books in print. Unfortunately, this mass of material is either not readily available to the Fleet, or else it is in a form which cannot easily be assimilated. If therefore unclassified information is to provide the Navy with its essential background knowledge of the enemy, it must first be collated and re-issued in easily digestible form. Harking back to security considerations, we would of course have to be careful that unclassified straws were not built into a high-grade haystack, or of unintentional compromise by our selection of the information we publish. But assuming that the general picture presented is both logical and probable, and is also supported by the broad mass of unclassified material available, no compromise should result. I consider that there exists a need for such a periodic unclasssified publication which can be distributed in quantity to ships and establishments, and whose sole purpose would be to keep all personnel informed about the men, ships and weapons belonging to other navies which one day we may be called upon to fight. It is perhaps unfair to blame N.I.D. for the lack of such a publication and unrealistic to expect him to produce one in the future. Intelligence organisations have to deal so continuously with highly classified material that they tend to overlook the existence of much of the same information in unclassified form, and in anv case there would always be the danger of their classified knowledge kither shading or distorting their unclassified presentation. I therefore suggest that this task might more properly be laid at the door of C.N.I., or perhaps even D.N.E.S., who would then be entirely responsible for producing such a periodical, with N.I.D. only checking the finished product for any seriously misleading statements. I am confident that such a publication can be produced and be of value, since a few years back I saw a most effective version produced by H.Q. USAREUR for their troops in Germany. Yours truly, EFFECTIVE WORKING HOURS SIR,-In the stimulating and pertinent article on 'Effective Working Hours' in the July, 1961 number of THE NAVAL REVIEW, the Training Department was urged to assume responsibility for training in Management. The author can rest assured that they need no urging as they have long been keen to do so. Space is being kept for it in the syllabuses of officers and senior ratings and a start has been made on CORRESPONDENCE 43 I a small scale. The trouble is that Management, like Training, provokes many widely differing opinions and training cannot start until it is agreed how the Navy and its ships should be Managed! But before long Management will be taught at all levels from Captains to Petty Officers. Yours very truly, 'TRAINER' T H E NEW BATTLEGROUND S1~,-The author of 'The New Battleground' in the July issue of THE NAVAL suggests that the Hydrographer of the Navy should organise and co-ordinate the collection of oceanographic data in order that there should be a better understanding of the deep oceans. This is already the Hydrographer's responsibility, as he is Adviser to the Board of Admiralty on oceanographic matters. Since the Forsters, father and son, accompanied Captain Cook into the Pacific to observe sea surface temperatures the Royal Navy has continued, whenever possible, to foster the study of oceanography. In 1872 there set out from England H.M.S. Challenger, a vessel administered by the Hydrographer of the Navy and under the command of Captain Nares, which, carrying a strong team of scientists, circled the globe in three and a half years and made the first scientific observations in the deep oceans. Modern oceanography stems from this great naval expedition. The oceanographic tradition in the Surveying Service has been continued to the present day with the modest means available. Another H.M.S. Challenger, carrying scientists, made a world oceanographic voyage in 1950-52. H.M.S. Owen made valuable observations on her passages in the Atlantic to and from South Georgia in 1960-61. This ship will also play a major role in the International Indian Ocean Expedition starting this autumn and extending over the next three years. But these single-ship cruises only provide a limited quantity of material,. it is necessary, as, for example, in meteorology, to collect a great amount of information regularly, continuously and frequently, in order to build up sufficient material for the weather forecasts; similarly, for a better knowledge of the ocean, a large quantity of observations must be obtained before the necessary charts or tables can be produced for both the scientist and the seaman. There is a general lack of understanding of oceanography within the Fleet and lack of oceanographic instruments for use in H.M. ships. There is a tendency, even when instruments are provided, to regard oceanographic observing as a drudgery and it is frequently ignored or even forgotten on the score of other pressing business. 'Doppler' has pointed out that a major piece of equipment, the echo sounder, has received little attention. No more than a dozen ships in the Royal Navy are capable of sounding in depths exceeding 2,000 fathoms, yet it is imperative that as complete a picture of the seabed as possible is built up, as the conformation of the ocean floor forms the framework within which is contained the sea itself with its complex surface and sub-surface currents and its diverse thermal and chemical structure. A far more comprehensive series of bathythermograph 'dips' throughout the oceans, and at greater depths, is required to provide data for the more efficient use of anti-submarine weapons. We have a long way to go before synoptic charts REVIEW 432 CORRESPONDENCE showing prevailing oceanographic conditions will be available to the Fleet, but such a requirement is highly desirable. The future of oceanography within the Fleet envisages more oceanographic education for officers and the increasing supply of the simpler oceanographic instruments to ships, such as deeper bathythermographs, recording thermographs, salinometers, improved echo-sounders, and possibly, at a later stage, towed magnetometers and built-in gravimeters. As more instruments become available, directions for regular use will be given. With the enthusiastic support of Senior Officers it is hoped that oceanographic observing will become as much a part of the Navy as Gunnery or Meteorology, for it is an integral part of modern submarine and antisubmarine operations. With his own ships, the Hydrographer will continue to carry out more comprehensive oceanographic surveys, assisted by scientists both from within and without the Naval Service. But General Service ships will also be expected on occasions to embark oceanographers for specific projects and to allow them every facility to progress their data collection. Data collection at sea is only one side of the problem; there must be built up ashore adequate facilities for processing the accumulated data, and then for providing the resulting material in the form most convenient for the naval user at sea who is either engaged in hunting a submarine or, in a submarine himself, in avoiding detection. And it is to the form in which this material is required that the user must now devote his attention-the Hydrographer maintains the facilities for producing this material in graphic or tabular form. Departments and Divisions in the Admiralty concerned in this subject are getting together and plans are being formulated, but more than plans are needed. Money is essential to provide the observing equipment; enthusiasm and understanding are required at sea; cooperation is required between naval and scientific staffs to collate, digest, process and publish the material; Universities and professional oceanographers must be called in to assist. A great thrust forward is required with all these rasks and the Hydrographer is willing and eager to foster the science of oceanography in the Royal Navy, which is essential if we are to be 'at home' in the New Battleground beneath the sea in the same way as we have always been upon the surface. Yours truly, E. G. IRVING END OF AN ERA SIR,-In the Home section of 'Naval Agairs' in the July number is an article, 'End of an Era'. Sad though it is that the Commander-in-Chief, The Nore has ceased to exist, the memories recalled by the article, and many more, have been directly inherited by the new Sub-command of the Commander-in-Chief, Portsmouth which I command as Flag Officer, Medway. I fear that some people may have gained the very mistaken impression that the Navy left Chatham when the Nore Command closed. This was very far from the case. First, H.M. Dockyard, Chatham is as busy as ever it was and I have no CORRESPONDENCE 433 doubt that Mr. Pepys and Mr. Pett are delighted with its progress and the fact that it is the Pilot Yard for the new functional organisation which is being introduced in conformity with the latest industrial practice. The Dockyard continues and will continue to refit, repair, reconstruct and build ships for Her Majesty's Fleet on the same scale as before, and this is borne out by considerable expenditure on capital equipment recently authorised to modernise its facilities. Ships from the Fleet continue to be based on Chatham, just as they were before the Nore Command ceased, so that there is no difference in the number of seagoing officers and men to be seen in the Medway Towns. The Barracks have now become the Fleet Accommodation Centre and the Supply and Secretariat School. Here again Chatham is pointing the way and showing the Navy how to make better use of good accommodation than in housing an idle drafting margin. I understand the example is being followed elsewhere. In other fields Chatham remains as flourishing as ever: cricket, rugger, soccer, sailing, golf, etc., are still played and enjoyed and, with the help of the Army, strong United Services teams are fielded. We regret the loss of the Commander-in-Chief, The Nore and his staff, and we mourn the departure of the Royal Marines, but the Royal Navy is very much present at Chatham and will ensure that the traditions are kept. We consider ourselves an example of the modern Navy-streamlined, efficient and go-ahead. Let us now discard our mourning bands and continue our progress. Yours faithfully, I. W. T. BELOE THE PAPERS OF ADMIRAL SIR JOHN FISHER S1~,-The setting up of a 'Committee on Designs' and the furore of argument and publicity which preceded and followed the advent of the Dreadnought and Invincible in the early years of the century, are referred to in the review of 'The Papers of Admiral Sir John Fisher' in the July edition of THE NAVAL REVIEW. This turmoil sharply contrasts with the unobtrusive advent, some thirty odd years later, of the Illustrious class, the world's first armoured aircraft carriers. In both instances many technical difficulties had to be overcome, but for the carriers there was also the severe handicap of a Treaty displacement limitation. When the Treaty was being negotiated it is clear that the possibility of armoured carriers was not envisaged, or this country would not have advocated reducing the displacement limit from 27,000 to 22,000 tons, or eventually have accepted 23,000 tons. In retrospect it is a little curious that the demand for armoured carriers did not arise earlier than it did, but perhaps the strenuous and persistent objections of Naval Constructors to the addition of a few tons of extra topweight in existing ships inhibited naval officers from pressing for the addition of many hundreds of tons of armour on the flight decks of new designs of carriers. In the spring of 1936 the growing power of Hitler in Germany made it imperative to lay down new carriers without delay. It would have been possible to order repeat Ark Royals, but the late Admiral Sir Reginald Henderson, who was then Controller, was adamant that the new ships must be fully armoured carriers. The difficulties facing Sir Reginald were formidable. There was no D.N.C. for Sir Arthur Johns 434 CORRESPONDENCE was sick and absent from the Admiralty. There were no agreed Staff Requirements for armoured carriers, for no one at that time believed that a worthwhile armoured carrier could be designed on a displacement of 23,000 tons and hence no design studies for such ships had been made. The aircraft carrier design section was 'bows under' with the flood of detailed design drawings for the Ark Royal, then building at Cammell Lairds. If the normal design procedure for a new class of major warship had been followed, including the agreement of Staff Requirements, it would have been at least two or three years before orders for ships could have been placed. Yet such was the compelling magic of this most unorthodox Controller that he secured Board approval for a sketch design of fully armoured carrier in the very short period of three months. It was a considerable achievement. The building drawings and specifications for the new carriers were prepared under the supervision of Sir Stanley Goodall, who signed them on his appointment as D.N.C. and thus took full responsibility for the design of the Illustrious class. The nation has good cause to be grateful to Admiral Sir Reginald Henderson, for it was only because of the swift and decisive action he took in the spring of 1936 that the world's first armoured carriers were available so early in the war. No other carrier could have survived the tremendous hammering that Illustrious received from the Luftwaffe off Sicily, while the ability of this class of carrier to stand up to the Kamikase attacks saved many lives and enabled them to be quickly operational again after the attacks. The unarmoured United States carriers did not fare so well and it seems possible that if the carriers of the British Pacific Fleet had not had armoured decks they 'would all have been sunk. The angled deck, the mirror sight and the steam catapult are not the only British inventions to have been adopted by the United States Navy for the armoured carrier itself is a British invention. Yours truly, W.A.D.F. QUERIES ON UNIFORM SIR,-I should be most gratef~dif any of your readers could help me with notes as to variations in uniform worn during the last war, especially on foreign stations. According to the Regulations the following changes were authorised:1939 Either watch coat or great coat permitted. 1940 Wearing of white cap covers in home waters suspended. Either blue or khaki shoulder straps to be worn with khaki. 1941 Lace to only go halfway round the cuff. Sub-Lieutenants and Warrant Officers not required to wear swords, nor Midshipmen dirks. R.N.V.R. Lieut.-Commanders to have a waved instead of a straight halfstripe. 1942 Blue bottledress forbidden. Khaki battledress only to be worn by beach communication parties and other specially authorised. Serge uniform may be worn instead of cloth in all climates. 1943 Blue working dress approved except in hot climates. Not to be worn on leave. CORRESPONDENCE 1944 Shoulder straps with woven 'lace' introduced. Helmet no longer required. 1945 Working dress may be worn on passage by air. Special blue working dress for air crews. Action and anti-malarial dress of blue shirt and blue cotton trousers. Khaki bush shirt and shorts when khaki tropical dress is authorised. Blue beret for naval air crews. But regulations are seldom strictly observed in wartime and any innovation made officially is usually preceded by its unofficial introduction over a long period. The sort of questions I should like answered include: When did the wearing of shorts give place to the idea that trousers must be worn as a guard against flash ? When was the wearing of sun helmets abandoned ? T o what extent was blue battledress worn before 'working dress' was authorised? Was khaki worn by anyone not actually serving with the Army? Were there any particular variations between the customs of different stations ? What did officers and men wear in submarines while on patrol. Finally, were any officers notorious for particular idiosyncrasies of dress ? Nelson wore a coat with ten buttons instead of nine, Beatty one with three buttons instead of four. Surely this war must have thrown up something strange. Yours faithfully, W. E. my OPPOSED LANDINGS SIR,-Whilst in no way gainsaying the fine work done by Captain Creswell i n 1936 in rewriting the Manual of Combined Operations, I have a considerable sympathy with the remarks of the reviewer of 'The Watery Maze' regarding the neglect of the art of Combined Operations between World Wars I and 11. A reference to the official History of Combined Operations which we produced in Amphibious Warfare Headquarters in 1956 shews the following significant paragraph under the heading of 'The Inter-Services Training and Development Centre' :'As one of their duties, the officers (i.e. the staff officers of the newly-formed I.S.T.D.C.) witnessed a combined exercise carried out by a cruiser squadron and some destroyers (in 1938) at Slapon Sands. Here, the soldiers were landed in open boats with muffled oars. No progress in technique had taken place since the Crimea'. I am, Sir, Yours faithfully, B. S. MALLORY CORRESPONDENCE LESSONS LEARNT SIR,-From his comments on my letter about the lessons to be learnt from naval operations it seems that Captain Roskill and I look on a naval historian's duty from different angles. He says: 'Captain Creswell comes very near to suggesting that, rather than publish the criticisms of Sir Dudley Pound's (and presumably Mr. Churchill's) interventions in the conduct of operations, I should have suppressed the views of the Commanders-in-Chief concerned. It does not seem to have occurred to him that such action by me would have resulted in the responsibility for things that went wrong (such as the disaster to convoy PQ.17) being placed where it definitely did not belong. Had I done that I would indeed have been guilty of the worst dishonesty that a historian can commit'. This I interpret to mean that when there is a disaster someone must be blamed by the historian. Personally, I am unable to subscribe to that view. It seems to me that in the stresses of a great war the Fates are often stronger than man, even man at his best: that an enterprise may fail, and fail disastrously, without the officer responsible for it necessarily deserving castigation. The test case is, of course, convoy PQ.17. It will be remembered that in the spring of 1942 Stalin was insisting on the vital need for all possible arms from America and Britain if the Russians were to withstand a new German onslaught. In April, Roosevelt, answering a message from Churchill about 'the serious convoy situation', had wired '. . . I fear not only the political repercussions in Russia, but even more the fact that our supplies will not reach them promptly'. It was in these circumstances that on May 17th the Prime Minister ended a minute to the Chiefs of Staffs Committee, summarising the pressure being put upon him, with the words: 'My own feeling, mingled with much anxiety, is that the convoy ought to sail on the 18th. The operation is justified if half gets through. Failure on our part to make the attempt would weaken our influence with both our major allies. There are always the uncertainties of weather and luck, which may aid us. I share your misgivings, but I feel it is a matter of duty'. On the following day Pound wrote to King: 'The whole thing is a most unsound operation with the dice loaded heavily against us'; and with this King agreed. But with Pound there was no question of refusing the burden laid upon him. In the event the convoy, PQ.16, sailed from Iceland on May 21st and, though it suffered severe losses from air attack and some from submarines, about threequarters got through. The situation facing the next convoy, PQ.17, was however more hazardous still. Daylight was now continuous and by this time the enemy had the Tirpitz, Hipper, two pocket battleships and ten destroyers in northern waters. Because of this Pound had it in mind that if a serious threat &om the surface forces arose it would be better to scatter the convoy, accepting some inevitable losses from air and submarine attack, rather than court annihilation as a body. For the scattering to be effective the order must be given several hours before the enemy could strike. At 9.30 p.m. on July 4th he judged the moment had come and gave the order. At noon next day the Tirpitz and Co. left Alten Fiord, rounded the North Cape and steered to the eastward. At 9.30 that night they were recalled. Captain Roskill says ('The War at Sea', Vol. 11): 'When the allied sighting reports already mentioned (sighting of Tirpitz by submarines and aircraft) were intercepted, and it became clear that the scattered convoy was suffering heavily at the hands of U-boats and CORRESPONDENCE 437 aircraft, Admiral Raeder cancelled the operations'. Here, without further information, one cannot disentangle post hoc and propter hoc. But it seems fair to suppose that in Raeder's view the risks to the big ships, acceptable when they were offered a concentrated target, became less and less acceptable the more widely the convoy scattered. In his orders he had stressed that 'the operation should be quickly executed', and this was no longer possible. In the outcome the attacks on the merchant ships by submarines and aircraft were so heavy that only a third of the convoy reached harbour. It was in truth a disastrous voyage; Captain Roskill makes it clear in his history that in his opinion:(a) if the convoy and escort had kept together, more ships would have got through : (b) 'the enemy was never likely to risk the Tirpitz in close attack on a convoy protected by an escort which was heavily armed with torpedoes', and previous experience of the cautious handling of German ships operating against our Atlantic trade should have made this clear to Pound. If, despite what seems evidence to the contrary in the Fuehrer Conferences on Naval Affairs, the German squadron had no real intention of coming to grips with an escorted convoy, (a), above, would of course be true. But this brings us to (b). This, Captain Roskill says, is plain. That Broome's six destroyers would have been aggressively handled there is no doubt; but is it really to be believed that they could have kept away the Tirpitz, Hipper, Scheer and seven destroyers throughout the endless Arctic daylight? There is no evidence for this, and the analogy with the Atlantic trade attacks is unconvincing. In those, single ships or a pair were operating on their own, thousands of miles from their base. Here the big ships had destroyers with them and aircraft at hand, and they need only go a few hundred miles. And here the target was believed to be a far more important one than the average Atlantic convoy. Both sides considered that these supplies, though comparatively small in tonnage, were vital to a campaign which might spell Russia's downfall. (Raeder, at a conference with Hitler the following month, said: 'Supplies to northern ports of Russia remain decisive for the conduct of the war waged by the Anglo-Saxons'. And Hitler agreed.) It was in these circumstances that Pound made his most difficult decision. A disaster followed. Bur had he not ordered the convoy to scatter, the disaster might well have been heavier still. Yours truly, J. CRESWELL Captain Roskill writes :- I welcome discussion in these columns about historical events regarding which more than one opinion is obviously possible. But I deprecate the attribution to others of a point of view (e.g. 'that when there is a disaster someone must be blamed for it by the historian'), for which no grounds whatever exist. In actual fact many disasters are, alas, recounted in 'The War at Sea', and in the vast majority of cases no attribution of responsibility (it is Captain Creswell who introduces the word 'blame') is suggested. What the historian must, I think, do is to investigate the 438 CORRESPONDENCE evidence as thoroughly as possible and then state his conclusions fearlessly, but in the full knowledge that he can never hope to establish the final and absolute truth. The weakness of Captain Creswell's well-argued case lies in the fact that he has only seen a very small proportion of the considerable mass of evidence about PQ.17. Thus the published extracts from some of the so-called 'Fiihrer Conferences' have insignificant importance compared with the evidence in the German OKM records in the captured German archives. These contain the full record of the discussions on the sortie of the Tirpitz and her consorts, the orders to Schniewind, and the messages that passed between him and the Naval Staff. The most important point is the extreme caution of the German high authorities over committing the Tirpitz to such an operation, and the restrictions placed upon the C.-in-C. in carrying out the attempt. Though this could not, of course, have been definitely known in London, the quality of our Intelligence was at the time such as to afford strong indications that such was the case. Furthermore, good though our Intelligence was, we did not know what the Tirpitz was doing when the order to the cruisers to withdraw and the convoy to scatter was sent at about 9 p.m. on July 4th, 1942. The orders were sent on the assumption that a plan of which we had received reliable indications was actually in train. In other words the 'negative Intelligence' (which, as every Intelligence Officer knows, can be as important as positive Intelligence) was ignored; and the officer in charge of the surface ship plot in the O.I.C. represented at the time the danger of doing precisely that. Captain Creswell makes light of the lessons to be learnt from earlier attacks on convoys by German warships; but he ignores the sortie by the Tirpitz and destroyers against convoys PQ.12 and QP.8 in the preceding March. Although we were fully aware that, for about two days, she was searching for those convoys, and once passed very close to them, so far as I am aware no one considered ordering them to scatter. Yet even before PQ.17 had sailed Admiral Pound told the C.-in-C., Home Fleet (according to the latter's account) that 'if the convoy runs into trouble we can always order it to scatter'; to which the C.-in-C.'s reaction was to state very unequivocally that to do any such thing would be utterly disastrous. Why, one wonders, was that desperate expedient in the First Sea Lord's mind from the beginning of the operation ? One can only guess the reasons, but it is worth remarking that the 1939 Fighting Instructions (which were signed by Admirals Pound and Forbes) contained a categorical statement that if a convoy was attacked by a superior force 'the ships in convoy should be ordered to scatter and the escorts to- concentrate' (my italics); and that in 1941, obviously as a result of the war experience which Captain Creswell decries, that sentence was cancelled and far less rigid instructionsnamely that 'the action of the escort must depend upon circumstances . . . the safety of the convoy may be furthered by ordering it to scattery-were substituted. It should also be noted that those instructions obviously intended that the decision should rest with the senior officer of the escort. I hold no particular brief for Fighting Instructions, especially if they are rigid, but it is a fact that Admiral Pound's actions ran contrary to the amended instruction which he had recently approved. I cannot accept the complete distinction that Captain Creswell attempts to draw between eariier attacks (or attempted attacks) on our convoys by enemy surface ships and the case of PQ.17. T o give one example, the Scheer attacked convoy HX.84 when it was escorted only by one A.M.C. That convoy scattered when the attack began, the Jervii Bay sacrificed herself heroically, and only five of the thirty- CORRESPONDENCE 439 seven merchantmen were lost. On the evening of July 4th, 1942, the four cruisers (whose withdrawal by the Admiralty Captain Creswell ignores) expected to be engaged shortly with superior enemy forces, and would surely have acquitted themselves as valiantly as the Jervis Bay had the need arisen. Captain Creswell lays justifiable stress on the political pressure to which the Admiralty was subjected, and to the length of daylight at the time of PQ.17's passage; but so did I in my account! However he makes no mention of the fact that the very fickle weather in the Barents Sea could not possibly be predicted in London. On July 2nd-3rd PQ.17 did actually enjoy the protection of fog, and the chances of war might well have produced weather in which it was very difficult for the enemy to locate it two days later. This was what actually occurred in the Tirpitz's March sortie, and it is the sort of imponderable factor which makes the signalling of rigid tactical orders from a shore headquarters hundreds of miles away so dangerous. Had the intelligence actually available in London been signalled to the C.-in-C., repeated to the Senior Officer of the Escort, it is surely beyond doubt that, probably without further orders, Admiral Hamilton and the destroyers would have held on. Indeed on the afternoon of the 4th Admiral Hamilton reported that it was his intention to hold on-possibly as late as the following afternoon-'until the enemy surface situation had clarified'. Moreover, throughout the 4th the convoy was within range of the Victorious's air striking force, and had the intelligence been signalled, indicating a likely attack on the 5th, it is at least possible that Admiral Tovey (who had fourteen destroyers with the main fleet) would have accepted the risk of moving east to keep within air striking distance on that day. Actually during the night of 5th/6th the Admiralty signalled three times to the C.-in-C. suggesting precisely that measure; but it was of course by that time too late. In the Bismarck operation the Admiralty signalled to the C.-in-C. when the vital intelligence came into their hands to 'act on the assumption' that the Bismarck was making for Brest: when the Scharnhorst attempted to attack JW.55B in December, 1943, the signalling of intelligence to the C.-in-C. was brilliantly handled. Surely the correct measure to take on the evening of July 4th, 1942, was either to signal the intelligence to the C.-in-C. or to order him 'to act on the assumption that the Tirpitz, etc., would sail from Alten Fiord to attack PQ.17 within the next twenty-four hours'. That would have placed the responsibility for the necessary countermeasures, including the defence of the convoy, squarely where it belonged. As it was, Admiral Tovey was left largely in the dark regarding the reasons for the emergency messages sent. Turning now to the consequences of the Admiralty's orders, it is of course impossible to prove that, had the enemy surface ship attack taken place, the losses would have been greater or less than were actually suffered. What is beyond argument is that the moral effect of the withdrawal of the cruisers and destroyers was catastrophic both among the merchant seamen and among at any rate some of the warship crews. The Commander of the Norfolk (the cruiser flagship) jotted down this note at the time: 'The effect (of the withdrawal) on the ship's company was devastating. Twenty-four hours earlier there had been only one thought-that at last we were going to bring enemy surface ships to action. I had never known the men in such good heart. . . Then in the space of a few hours we abandoned our aircraft and its crew, and we abandoned the convoy. The ship was in a turmoil . . . it was the blackest day we ever knew'. Of course the action of July 5th, 1942, had it been fought, might have been a desperate one against heavy odds. But would it have been any more . 440 CORRESPONDENCE desperate than that which Sherbrooke was to fight in defence of convoy JW.51B a few months later ? Or any less successful ? In sum it was not only what was done but how it was done that was so disastrous; for the merchantmen unquestionably felt that they had been abandoned by the Royal Navy at a moment of crisis. Lastly I do not understand Captain Creswell's remark about 'one cannot disentangle post hoc and propter hoc' in the sentence he quotes from me about the German cancellation of the sortie. It reads plainly enough to me-that Raeder recalled the squadron because he knew it had been reported and because he was aware that the Luftwaffe and U-boats were doing all that the surface ships might have done to the convoy. T o continue would thus have been futile as well as dangerous. There is, so far as I know, no evidence of any kind to support what Captain Creswell suggests is 'fair to suppose'-namely that 'the risks to the big ships, acceptable when they were offered a concentrated target, became less and less acceptable the more widely the convoy scattered'. SOME REMARKS BY A JUNIOR OFFICER SIR,-Thank you for the article 'Some Remarks by a Junior Officer' in your April as I joined 1961 issue. I suppose the author would regard me as a 'silly old b--', the Service in 1935; but because one was born in the past, it does not necessarily mean that one need live in the past, and indeed we have one great advantage over the Junior Officer in that we can compare different periods in naval history. I agree 100 per cent with the author that there is nothing wrong with the sailor; he is as good as I was, and as good as my father was, but I do maintain he is not being strongly and purposefully led. Whether this stems from political pressure, a change in the social pattern or a false doctrine at Dartmouth, I don't know; but I do know that the attitude of many Senior Officers is 'soft' in the extreme. We are fast becoming a Navy of meetings, discussion, and 'Would you mind, please'; individual decisions are rarely taken and crisp firm orders almost never given. It is old-fashioned to give a 'blast', and whatever happens we must never hurt anyone's feelings. It is also old-fashioned to put men in the report, except for certain offences where there is no option, and over the last few years I have been appalled at the way many officers neglect their duty in this respect, even in cases of gross misconduct. Democracy, which is desirable for the country as a whole, is nevertheless the most inefficient system in the world. The Service traditionally, and by law, is an autocratic system, but since the war, and particularly over the last few years, we have tried to play at democracy and sooner or later we shall have to make up our minds which way to go in order to avoid a head-on collision. When things go wrong people are baffled and puzzled, and the usual remedy is to spend more money on more fancy schemes or democratic 'get-togethersy-the reason is not hard to find. I am reminded of an old saying based on Napoleon's dictum, 'There are no bad sailors, only bad officers', which, apart from the odd exception, I believe to be true. Until we forget what I can only describe as 'this democratic nonsense' or 'cult of fellowship', and demand from everyone a much higher standard in thought, word and deed, the Service will never be as 'Swift' or 'All about' as it used to be. Yours truly, F. R. BROWN CORRESPONDENCE 441 T H E BRITISH DESTROYER SIR,--With aU due regard, I feel I should correct 'Fame' on the last paragraph of his review of 'The British Destroyer'. This excellent publication contains at least two other errors, one being in the caption to Plate 102 and text of page 103: the early 'L' class mounted eight 4-inch and not 4.7-inch as stated. The other error is on page 113, where the 1943 'Battles' are quoted as having a fifth 4-7-inch gun mounted amidships. This should, of course, read 4-5-inch. Yours faithfully, R.N. J.W. OLD SEA SONGS S1R,-L00king back at THE NAVAL REVIEW for 1941, page 566, and your contributor's query about the song 'Home, Dearie, Home', to which I made a reply on page 649, it may be of interest to know that a few years ago I made further inquiries at the British Mseum and discovered that the lines are by W. E. Henley in verses entitled '0 Falmouth is a Fine Town'. Obviously someone substituted 'Pompey' for 'Falmouth'. Anyway I set the lines to music as Henley wrote them and I enclose the result which may interest your contributor if you can still locate him (duly forwarded-ED.). The song was broadcast by the B.B.C. Male Voice Choir in a Friday night programme some months ago. As a matter of similar interest I have also recently set to music the very clever lines by an unknown author entitled 'The Lords of the Admiraltee', about which there were some queries in the Mariner's Mirror in 1935. I have had to amend Admiral Phillimore's version (and, I think, improved on it) to make metrical, and more 'sensible nonsense' of the lines. This will be published before the end of the year. But I wish I could discover who really did write the words. They refer to the Vanguard/Iron Duke collision off Dublin in 1875 (the court martial proceedings of which I have here in the R.I.N.A. Library). I fear we shall never find out who the author really was unless some very aged member of THE NAVAL REVIEW is alive today who could help. Though he might remember the song from gunroom days in the 1880s, he would probably not know the author. I first heard the song in 1915, in Birmingham, when our 'Chief' (Eng. Commander Hewitt) used to sing a version of the words more akin to those I now use. The musical setting is of course quite different. Yours truly, AUSTRALIAN VIGNETTE SIR,-I was conscious of enjoying the light reading of 'Australian Vignette' in the July NAVAL REVIEW, its amusing anecdotes, and its unpretentious common sense, necessarily coloured by the brevity of the author's experience of Australia. It is, however, a pity that he did not allow readers to form their own conclusions, as 442 CORRESPONDENCE those which he chose to make bear little relevance to his article, are difficult to understand, and, in my opinion, more difficult to justify. Take, for instance, the second paragraph. As I interpret it, the first sentence states that Britain is indifferent to the 'bond' between Australia and herself, one of the 'factors' of which is 'defence'; while the third sentence, in apparent contradiction, has it that 'Britain is now more interested than Australia' in 'defence co-operation'. Where lies the conclusion ? Again, to write an article about Australia, her people, and her problems, and then to illustrate a conclusion concerning Australia by referring to New Zealand is hardly logical. Nor, I imagine, would an Australian consider it complimentary! T o make matters worse, the statement which is made concerning New Zealand and the Common Market appears to be based on some of the ill-informed outcry which took place in that country, much to Lord Beaverbrook's delight, before the British Government's policy was made clear. (Although there is nothing new in New Zealand seeking other overseas markets besides Britain for her goods.) Has K. R. J. Arnold read Mr. Holyoake's, or Mr. Nash's, published and up-to-date views on this subject? If not, he should. Yours faithfully, JOHNF. ALLAN SIR,-While expressing thanks for J. F. Allan's opening remarks, I take exception to the remainder of his letter to you. '. . . coloured by the brevity of the author's experience of Australia' is the kind of remark attributable to a mainly destructive critic. I submit that two years in a country is sufficient to form sound conclusions concerning that country. In his second paragraph, which I assume refers to my 'Conclusion', he says I am illogical. A failure to interpret correctly has led him to this. Surely he can see that it is possible for there to be indifference on the part of one member (I did not say complete indifference), yet for that member to be more interested than the other in one particular factor. In referring to New Zealand's problems in connection with Britain joining the Common Market, I was drawing a distinction rather than illustrating a conclusion. Your correspondent's objection is therefore ridiculous. Even more so is his contention that an Australian would find it uncomplimentary. Whatever Mr. Nash or Mr. Holyoake may have said since I wrote my article, it cannot alter the fact that if Britain joins the Common Market, Australia and New Zealand are going to find greater difficulty in exporting their primary produce to Britain. Would J. F. Allan please tell us exactly what his objections to my conclusions are, and their foundations; rather than invite me to read the same papers, periodicals and so on, as does he. Yours truly, K. R.J. ARNOLD New Members The following have been enrolled as new members during the last six months:AGA,J. P., I.N. ............... AMPTHILL, Lord, C.B:E. ............... ARMSTRONG, A. R. ... ............... ATKINSON, P. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . BANKS, J. D. H. .................. BARNES, R. H. .................. BATTEN, D. ............... BOULTON,E. G:~R.N:R. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . BRANNAM, I. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . BRYSON, L. S. .................. .................. CARPENTER, A. S. CHELTON, L. W. L. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . COBBOLD, I. A. C. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . COLLIE, A. R. G. .................. COLLIS,M. N.. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . CORNISH, G. M. .................. CUTLAND, M. J. .................. DUNN,R. D. R.N.R. ............... EASON, C. W. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . FARRELL, F. W. .................. GENT,W. N. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . GIRI, G. A. G. .................. GRAHAM,A.M.,R.N.Z.N. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . GRAHAM, W. J. .................. GRIFFITHS, R. J. H. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . GRUNDY. B. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . HALLID~Y, J. M., R.N.Z.N. . . . . . . . . . HARGREAVES, C. F. HARRINGTON, W. H. c.B.E.,'D.s.o~;'R.A.N. HAWLEY, W. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . HEALEY, M. R. ......... LAING,E. A. M.. R.N:R. ......... LEECE~T. C. S. ............ LLOYD,J. C. E. ...... LLOYD-EDWARDS, N., R.N.R:" ...... LOASBY, P. G., D.S.C. ......... LOCKE, C. F., A.M.I.E.E. . . . . . . . . . MCCANN, J. L., Ghanian Navy ...... MACKILLIGIN, W. H. M. ......... MACLEOD, D:V. M., D.S.C.. . . . . . MADDISON, J. A. T. . . . . . . . . . MARPLE, R. J., B.A. . . . . . . . . . MAY,G. R. ......... MIDDLETON, J.'H. D. ...... NISBET,C. J. . . . . . . . . . . . . ...... OGLESBY, A. J. ......... ...... PAGE,K. R. ......... ...... PEARSE, R. I. ......... ...... PELLEY, C. L. . . . . . . . . . . . . ...... PIGGOT, C. A. . . . . . . . . . . . . ...... SLOANE, T. J. I<. ...... ...... SLUMAN, D. W. W., RM. . . . . . . ...... SYMONDS. G. 0.. D.S.C. ...... L:' WHITWA~I, N. K. L. ... ... WILLCOCK, C. B., M.A., A . M . I . E . ~ " YOUNG,H. W. . . . . . . . . . . . . ...... ...... ...... ...... ...... S.L. C. L. S.L. (S.D.) (C.) L. L. Cr. L. S.L. Cr. L.Cr. L. L. S.L. L.Cr. Cr. L. L. Cr. Esqr. L. Sgn.L.Cr. L. Cr. L. Wardmaster S.L. Mid. Cr. R.A. L.Cr. L.Cr. L.Cr. L. R.N.R. C. Cr . L.Cr. L. L. L. Cr. L. L. S.L. Mjr. C. L. L. L.Cr. L.Cr.